Thanks to the Constitution Society
and to
The Liberty Library of Constitutional Classics
![]() |
Reflections on the Revolution in France Formatted by Neil Jumonville, 2006 |
![]() |
IT MAY NOT BE UNNECESSARY to inform the reader that the following Reflections
had their origin in a correspondence between the Author and a very young gentleman
at Paris, who did him the honor of desiring his opinion upon the important transactions
which then, and ever since, have so much occupied the attention of all men.
An answer was written some time in the month of October 1789, but it was kept
back upon prudential considerations. That letter is alluded to in the beginning
of the following sheets. It has been since forwarded to the person to whom it
was addressed. The reasons for the delay in sending it were assigned in a short
letter to the same gentleman. This produced on his part a new and pressing application
for the Author's sentiments.
The Author began a second and more full discussion on the subject. This he had
some thoughts of publishing early in the last spring; but, the matter gaining
upon him, he found that what he had undertaken not only far exceeded the measure
of a letter, but that its importance required rather a more detailed consideration
than at that time he had any leisure to bestow upon it. However, having thrown
down his first thoughts in the form of a letter, and, indeed, when he sat down
to write, having intended it for aprivate letter, he found it difficult to change
the form of address when his sentiments had grown into a greater extent and
had received another direction. A different plan, he is sensible, might be more
favorable to a commodious division and distribution of his matter.
Dear Sir,
You are pleased to call again, and with some earnestness, for my thoughts on
the late proceedings in France. I will not give you reason to imagine that I
think my sentiments of such value as to wish myself to be solicited about them.
They are of too little consequence to be very anxiously either communicated
or withheld. It was from attention to you, and to you only, that I hesitated
at the time when you first desired to receive them. In the first letter I had
the honor to write to you, and which at length I send, I wrote neither for,
nor from, any description of men, nor shall I in this. My errors, if any, are
my own. My reputation alone is to answer for them.
You see, Sir, by the long letter I have transmitted to you, that though I do
most heartily wish that France may be animated by a spirit of rational liberty,
and that I think you bound, in all honest policy, to provide a permanent body
in which that spirit may reside, and an effectual organ by which it may act,
it is my misfortune to entertain great doubts concerning several material points
in your late transactions.
YOU IMAGINED, WHEN YOU WROTE LAST, that I might possibly be reckoned among the
approvers of certain proceedings in France, from the solemn public seal of sanction
they have received from two clubs of gentlemen in London, called the Constitutional
Society and the Revolution Society.
I certainly have the honor to belong to more clubs than one, in which the constitution
of this kingdom and the principles of the glorious Revolution are held in high
reverence, and I reckon myself among the most forward in my zeal for maintaining
that constitution and those principles in their utmost purity and vigor. It
is because I do so, that I think it necessary for me that there should be no
mistake. Those who cultivate the memory of our Revolution and those who are
attached to the constitution of this kingdom will take good care how they are
involved with persons who, under the pretext of zeal toward the Revolution and
constitution, too frequently wander from their true principles and are ready
on every occasion to depart from the firm but cautious and deliberate spirit
which produced the one, and which presides in the other. Before I proceed to
answer the more material particulars in your letter, I shall beg leave to give
you such information as I have been able to obtain of the two clubs which have
thought proper, as bodies, to interfere in the concerns of France, first assuring
you that I am not, and that I have never been, a member of either of those societies.
The first, calling itself the Constitutional Society, or Society for Constitutional
Information, or by some such title, is, I believe, of seven or eight years standing.
The institution of this society appears to be of a charitable and so far of
a laudable nature; it was intended for the circulation, at the expense of the
members, of many books which few others would be at the expense of buying, and
which might lie on the hands of the booksellers, to the great loss of an useful
body of men. Whether the books, so charitably circulated, were ever as charitably
read is more than I know. Possibly several of them have been exported to France
and, like goods not in request here, may with you have found a market. I have
heard much talk of the lights to be drawn from books that are sent from hence.
What improvements they have had in their passage (as it is said some liquors
are meliorated by crossing the sea) I cannot tell; but I never heard a man of
common judgment or the least degree of information speak a word in praise of
the greater part of the publications circulated by that society, nor have their
proceedings been accounted, except by some of themselves, as of any serious
consequence.
Your National Assembly seems to entertain much the same opinion that I do of
this poor charitable club. As a nation, you reserved the whole stock of your
eloquent acknowledgments for the Revolution Society, when their fellows in the
Constitutional were, in equity, entitled to some share. Since you have selected
the Revolution Society as the great object of your national thanks and praises,
you will think me excusable in making its late conduct the subject of my observations.
The National Assembly of France has given importance to these gentlemen by adopting
them; and they return the favor by acting as a committee in England for extending
the principles of the National Assembly. Henceforward we must consider them
as a kind of privileged persons, as no inconsiderable members in the diplomatic
body. This is one among the revolutions which have given splendor to obscurity,
and distinction to undiscerned merit. Until very lately I do not recollect to
have heard of this club. I am quite sure that it never occupied a moment of
my thoughts, nor, I believe, those of any person out of their own set. I find,
upon inquiry, that on the anniversary of the Revolution in 1688, a club of dissenters,
but of what denomination I know not, have long had the custom of hearing a sermon
in one of their churches; and that afterwards they spent the day cheerfully,
as other clubs do, at the tavern. But I never heard that any public measure
or political system, much less that the merits of the constitution of any foreign
nation, had been the subject of a formal proceeding at their festivals, until,
to my inexpressible surprise, I found them in a sort of public capacity, by
a congratulatory address, giving an authoritative sanction to the proceedings
of the National Assembly in France.
In the ancient principles and conduct of the club, so far at least as they were
declared, I see nothing to which I could take exception. I think it very probable
that for some purpose new members may have entered among them, and that some
truly Christian politicians, who love to dispense benefits but are careful to
conceal the hand which distributes the dole, may have made them the instruments
of their pious designs. Whatever I may have reason to suspect concerning private
management, I shall speak of nothing as of a certainty but what is public.
For one, I should be sorry to be thought, directly or indirectly, concerned
in their proceedings. I certainly take my full share, along with the rest of
the world, in my individual and private capacity, in speculating on what has
been done or is doing on the public stage in any place ancient or modern; in
the republic of Rome or the republic of Paris; but having no general apostolical
mission, being a citizen of a particular state and being bound up, in a considerable
degree, by its public will, I should think it at least improper and irregular
for me to open a formal public correspondence with the actual government of
a foreign nation, without the express authority of the government under which
I live.
I should be still more unwilling to enter into that correspondence under anything
like an equivocal description, which to many, unacquainted with our usages,
might make the address, in which I joined, appear as the act of persons in some
sort of corporate capacity acknowledged by the laws of this kingdom and authorized
to speak the sense of some part of it. On account of the ambiguity and uncertainty
of unauthorized general descriptions, and of the deceit which may be practiced
under them, and not from mere formality, the House of Commons would reject the
most sneaking petition for the most trifling object, under that mode of signature
to which you have thrown open the folding doors of your presence chamber, and
have ushered into your National Assembly with as much ceremony and parade, and
with as great a bustle of applause, as if you have been visited by the whole
representative majesty of the whole English nation. If what this society has
thought proper to send forth had been a piece of argument, it would have signified
little whose argument it was. It would be neither the more nor the less convincing
on account of the party it came from. But this is only a vote and resolution.
It stands solely on authority; and in this case it is the mere authority of
individuals, few of whom appear. Their signatures ought, in my opinion, to have
been annexed to their instrument. The world would then have the means of knowing
how many they are; who they are; and of what value their opinions may be, from
their personal abilities, from their knowledge, their experience, or their lead
and authority in this state. To me, who am but a plain man, the proceeding looks
a little too refined and too ingenious; it has too much the air of a political
strategem adopted for the sake of giving, under a high-sounding name, an importance
to the public declarations of this club which, when the matter came to be closely
inspected, they did not altogether so well deserve. It is a policy that has
very much the complexion of a fraud.
I flatter myself that I love a manly, moral, regulated liberty as well as any
gentleman of that society, be he who he will; and perhaps I have given as good
proofs of my attachment to that cause in the whole course of my public conduct.
I think I envy liberty as little as they do to any other nation. But I cannot
stand forward and give praise or blame to anything which relates to human actions,
and human concerns, on a simple view of the object, as it stands stripped of
every relation, in all the nakedness and solitude of metaphysical abstraction.
Circumstances (which with some gentlemen pass for nothing) give in reality to
every political principle its distinguishing color and discriminating effect.
The circumstances are what render every civil and political scheme beneficial
or noxious to mankind. Abstractedly speaking, government, as well as liberty,
is good; yet could I, in common sense, ten years ago, have felicitated France
on her enjoyment of a government (for she then had a government) without inquiry
what the nature of that government was, or how it was administered? Can I now
congratulate the same nation upon its freedom? Is it because liberty in the
abstract may be classed amongst the blessings of mankind, that I am seriously
to felicitate a madman, who has escaped from the protecting restraint and wholesome
darkness of his cell, on his restoration to the enjoyment of light and liberty?
Am I to congratulate a highwayman and murderer who has broke prison upon the
recovery of his natural rights? This would be to act over again the scene of
the criminals condemned to the galleys, and their heroic deliverer, the metaphysic
Knight of the Sorrowful Countenance.
When I see the spirit of liberty in action, I see a strong principle at work;
and this, for a while, is all I can possibly know of it. The wild gas, the fixed
air, is plainly broke loose; but we ought to suspend our judgment until the
first effervescence is a little subsided, till the liquor is cleared, and until
we see something deeper than the agitation of a troubled and frothy surface.
I must be tolerably sure, before I venture publicly to congratulate men upon
a blessing, that they have really received one. Flattery corrupts both the receiver
and the giver, and adulation is not of more service to the people than to kings.
I should, therefore, suspend my congratulations on the new liberty of France
until I was informed how it had been combined with government, with public force,
with the discipline and obedience of armies, with the collection of an effective
and well-distributed revenue, with morality and religion, with the solidity
of property, with peace and order, with civil and social manners. All these
(in their way) are good things, too, and without them liberty is not a benefit
whilst it lasts, and is not likely to continue long. The effect of liberty to
individuals is that they may do what they please; we ought to see what it will
please them to do, before we risk congratulations which may be soon turned into
complaints. Prudence would dictate this in the case of separate, insulated,
private men, but liberty, when men act in bodies, is power. Considerate people,
before they declare themselves, will observe the use which is made of power
and particularly of so trying a thing as new power in new persons of whose principles,
tempers, and dispositions they have little or no experience, and in situations
where those who appear the most stirring in the scene may possibly not be the
real movers.
ALL these considerations, however, were below the transcendental dignity of
the Revolution Society. Whilst I continued in the country, from whence I had
the honor of writing to you, I had but an imperfect idea of their transactions.
On my coming to town, I sent for an account of their proceedings, which had
been published by their authority, containing a sermon of Dr. Price, with the
Duke de Rochefoucault's and the Archbishop of Aix's letter, and several other
documents annexed. The whole of that publication, with the manifest design of
connecting the affairs of France with those of England by drawing us into an
imitation of the conduct of the National Assembly, gave me a considerable degree
of uneasiness. The effect of that conduct upon the power, credit, prosperity,
and tranquility of France became every day more evident. The form of constitution
to be settled for its future polity became more clear. We are now in a condition
to discern, with tolerable exactness, the true nature of the object held up
to our imitation. If the prudence of reserve and decorum dictates silence in
some circumstances, in others prudence of a higher order may justify us in speaking
our thoughts. The beginnings of confusion with us in England are at present
feeble enough, but, with you, we have seen an infancy still more feeble growing
by moments into a strength to heap mountains upon mountains and to wage war
with heaven itself. Whenever our neighbor's house is on fire, it cannot be amiss
for the engines to play a little on our own. Better to be despised for too anxious
apprehensions than ruined by too confident a security.
Solicitous chiefly for the peace of my own country, but by no means unconcerned
for yours, I wish to communicate more largely what was at first intended only
for your private satisfaction. I shall still keep your affairs in my eye and
continue to address myself to you. Indulging myself in the freedom of epistolary
intercourse, I beg leave to throw out my thoughts and express my feelings just
as they arise in my mind, with very little attention to formal method. I set
out with the proceedings of the Revolution Society, but I shall not confine
myself to them. Is it possible I should? It appears to me as if I were in a
great crisis, not of the affairs of France alone, but of all Europe, perhaps
of more than Europe. All circumstances taken together, the French revolution
is the most astonishing that has hitherto happened in the world. The most wonderful
things are brought about, in many instances by means the most absurd and ridiculous,
in the most ridiculous modes, and apparently by the most contemptible instruments.
Everything seems out of nature in this strange chaos of levity and ferocity,
and of all sorts of crimes jumbled together with all sorts of follies. In viewing
this monstrous tragicomic scene, the most opposite passions necessarily succeed
and sometimes mix with each other in the mind: alternate contempt and indignation,
alternate laughter and tears, alternate scorn and horror.
It cannot, however, be denied that to some this strange scene appeared in quite
another point of view. Into them it inspired no other sentiments than those
of exultation and rapture. They saw nothing in what has been done in France
but a firm and temperate exertion of freedom, so consistent, on the whole, with
morals and with piety as to make it deserving not only of the secular applause
of dashing Machiavellian politicians, but to render it a fit theme for all the
devout effusions of sacred eloquence.
On the forenoon of the fourth of November last, Doctor Richard Price, a non-conforming
minister of eminence, preached, at the dissenting meeting house of the Old Jewry,
to his club or society, a very extraordinary miscellaneous sermon, in which
there are some good moral and religious sentiments, and not ill expressed, mixed
up in a sort of porridge of various political opinions and reflections; but
the Revolution in France is the grand ingredient in the cauldron. I consider
the address transmitted by the Revolution Society to the National Assembly,
through Earl Stanhope, as originating in the principles of the sermon and as
a corollary from them. It was moved by the preacher of that discourse. It was
passed by those who came reeking from the effect of the sermon without any censure
or qualification, expressed or implied. If, however, any of the gentlemen concerned
shall wish to separate the sermon from the resolution, they know how to acknowledge
the one and to disavow the other. They may do it: I cannot.
For my part, I looked on that sermon as the public declaration of a man much
connected with literary caballers and intriguing philosophers, with political
theologians and theological politicians both at home and abroad. I know they
set him up as a sort of oracle, because, with the best intentions in the world,
he naturally philippizes and chants his prophetic song in exact unison with
their designs.
That sermon is in a strain which I believe has not been heard in this kingdom,
in any of the pulpits which are tolerated or encouraged in it, since the year
1648, when a predecessor of Dr. Price, the Rev. Hugh Peters, made the vault
of the king's own chapel at St. James's ring with the honor and privilege of
the saints, who, with the "high praises of God in their mouths, and a two-edged
sword in their hands, were to execute judgment on the heathen, and punishments
upon the people; to bind their kings with chains, and their nobles with fetters
of iron".[1] Few harangues from the pulpit, except in the days of your
league in France or in the days of our Solemn League and Covenant in England,
have ever breathed less of the spirit of moderation than this lecture in the
Old Jewry. Supposing, however, that something like moderation were visible in
this political sermon, yet politics and the pulpit are terms that have little
agreement. No sound ought to be heard in the church but the healing voice of
Christian charity. The cause of civil liberty and civil government gains as
little as that of religion by this confusion of duties. Those who quit their
proper character to assume what does not belong to them are, for the greater
part, ignorant both of the character they leave and of the character they assume.
Wholly unacquainted with the world in which they are so fond of meddling, and
inexperienced in all its affairs on which they pronounce with so much confidence,
they have nothing of politics but the passions they excite. Surely the church
is a place where one day's truce ought to be allowed to the dissensions and
animosities of mankind.
This pulpit style, revived after so long a discontinuance, had to me the air
of novelty, and of a novelty not wholly without danger. I do not charge this
danger equally to every part of the discourse. The hint given to a noble and
reverend lay divine, who is supposed high in office in one of our universities,
[2] and other lay divines "of rank and literature" may be proper and
seasonable, though somewhat new. If the noble Seekers should find nothing to
satisfy their pious fancies in the old staple of the national church, or in
all the rich variety to be found in the well-assorted warehouses of the dissenting
congregations, Dr. Price advises them to improve upon non-conformity and to
set up, each of them, a separate meeting house upon his own particular principles.[3](2)
It is somewhat remarkable that this reverend divine should be so earnest for
setting up new churches and so perfectly indifferent concerning the doctrine
which may be taught in them. His zeal is of a curious character. It is not for
the propagation of his own opinions, but of any opinions. It is not for the
diffusion of truth, but for the spreading of contradiction. Let the noble teachers
but dissent, it is no matter from whom or from what. This great point once secured,
it is taken for granted their religion will be rational and manly. I doubt whether
religion would reap all the benefits which the calculating divine computes from
this "great company of great preachers". It would certainly be a valuable
addition of nondescripts to the ample collection of known classes, genera and
species, which at present beautify the hortus siccus of dissent. A sermon from
a noble duke, or a noble marquis, or a noble earl, or baron bold would certainly
increase and diversify the amusements of this town, which begins to grow satiated
with the uniform round of its vapid dissipations. I should only stipulate that
these new Mess-Johns in robes and coronets should keep some sort of bounds in
the democratic and leveling principles which are expected from their titled
pulpits. The new evangelists will, I dare say, disappoint the hopes that are
conceived of them. They will not become, literally as well as figuratively,
polemic divines, nor be disposed so to drill their congregations that they may,
as in former blessed times, preach their doctrines to regiments of dragoons
and corps of infantry and artillery. Such arrangements, however favorable to
the cause of compulsory freedom, civil and religious, may not be equally conducive
to the national tranquility. These few restrictions I hope are no great stretches
of intolerance, no very violent exertions of despotism.
BUT I may say of our preacher "utinam nugis tota illa dedisset tempora
saevitiae". — All things in this his fulminating bull are not of
so innoxious a tendency. His doctrines affect our constitution in its vital
parts. He tells the Revolution Society in this political sermon that his Majesty
"is almost the only lawful king in the world because the only one who owes
his crown to the choice of his people." As to the kings of the world, all
of whom (except one) this archpontiff of the rights of men, with all the plenitude
and with more than the boldness of the papal deposing power in its meridian
fervor of the twelfth century, puts into one sweeping clause of ban and anathema
and proclaims usurpers by circles of longitude and latitude, over the whole
globe, it behooves them to consider how they admit into their territories these
apostolic missionaries who are to tell their subjects they are not lawful kings.
That is their concern. It is ours, as a domestic interest of some moment, seriously
to consider the solidity of the only principle upon which these gentlemen acknowledge
a king of Great Britain to be entitled to their allegiance.
This doctrine, as applied to the prince now on the British throne, either is
nonsense and therefore neither true nor false, or it affirms a most unfounded,
dangerous, illegal, and unconstitutional position. According to this spiritual
doctor of politics, if his Majesty does not owe his crown to the choice of his
people, he is no lawful king. Now nothing can be more untrue than that the crown
of this kingdom is so held by his Majesty. Therefore, if you follow their rule,
the king of Great Britain, who most certainly does not owe his high office to
any form of popular election, is in no respect better than the rest of the gang
of usurpers who reign, or rather rob, all over the face of this our miserable
world without any sort of right or title to the allegiance of their people.
The policy of this general doctrine, so qualified, is evident enough. The propagators
of this political gospel are in hopes that their abstract principle (their principle
that a popular choice is necessary to the legal existence of the sovereign magistracy)
would be overlooked, whilst the king of Great Britain was not affected by it.
In the meantime the ears of their congregations would be gradually habituated
to it, as if it were a first principle admitted without dispute. For the present
it would only operate as a theory, pickled in the preserving juices of pulpit
eloquence, and laid by for future use. Condo et compono quae mox depromere possim.
By this policy, whilst our government is soothed with a reservation in its favor,
to which it has no claim, the security which it has in common with all governments,
so far as opinion is security, is taken away.
Thus these politicians proceed whilst little notice is taken of their doctrines;
but when they come to be examined upon the plain meaning of their words and
the direct tendency of their doctrines, then equivocations and slippery constructions
come into play. When they say the king owes his crown to the choice of his people
and is therefore the only lawful sovereign in the world, they will perhaps tell
us they mean to say no more than that some of the king's predecessors have been
called to the throne by some sort of choice, and therefore he owes his crown
to the choice of his people. Thus, by a miserable subterfuge, they hope to render
their proposition safe by rendering it nugatory. They are welcome to the asylum
they seek for their offense, since they take refuge in their folly. For if you
admit this interpretation, how does their idea of election differ from our idea
of inheritance?
And how does the settlement of the crown in the Brunswick line derived from
James the First come to legalize our monarchy rather than that of any of the
neighboring countries? At some time or other, to be sure, all the beginners
of dynasties were chosen by those who called them to govern. There is ground
enough for the opinion that all the kingdoms of Europe were, at a remote period,
elective, with more or fewer limitations in the objects of choice. But whatever
kings might have been here or elsewhere a thousand years ago, or in whatever
manner the ruling dynasties of England or France may have begun, the king of
Great Britain is, at this day, king by a fixed rule of succession according
to the laws of his country; and whilst the legal conditions of the compact of
sovereignty are performed by him (as they are performed), he holds his crown
in contempt of the choice of the Revolution Society, who have not a single vote
for a king amongst them, either individually or collectively, though I make
no doubt they would soon erect themselves into an electoral college if things
were ripe to give effect to their claim. His Majesty's heirs and successors,
each in his time and order, will come to the crown with the same contempt of
their choice with which his Majesty has succeeded to that he wears.
Whatever may be the success of evasion in explaining away the gross error of
fact, which supposes that his Majesty (though he holds it in concurrence with
the wishes) owes his crown to the choice of his people, yet nothing can evade
their full explicit declaration concerning the principle of a right in the people
to choose; which right is directly maintained and tenaciously adhered to. All
the oblique insinuations concerning election bottom in this proposition and
are referable to it. Lest the foundation of the king's exclusive legal title
should pass for a mere rant of adulatory freedom, the political divine proceeds
dogmatically to assert[4] that, by the principles of the Revolution, the people
of England have acquired three fundamental rights, all which, with him, compose
one system and lie together in one short sentence, namely, that we have acquired
a right:
• (1) to choose our own governors.
• (2) to cashier them for misconduct.
• (3) to frame a government for ourselves.
This new and hitherto unheard-of bill of rights, though made in the name of
the whole people, belongs to those gentlemen and their faction only. The body
of the people of England have no share in it. They utterly disclaim it. They
will resist the practical assertion of it with their lives and fortunes. They
are bound to do so by the laws of their country made at the time of that very
Revolution which is appealed to in favor of the fictitious rights claimed by
the Society which abuses its name.
THESE GENTLEMEN OF THE OLD JEWRY, in all their reasonings on the Revolution
of 1688, have a revolution which happened in England about forty years before
and the late French revolution, so much before their eyes and in their hearts
that they are constantly confounding all the three together. It is necessary
that we should separate what they confound. We must recall their erring fancies
to the acts of the Revolution which we revere, for the discovery of its true
principles. If the principles of the Revolution of 1688 are anywhere to be found,
it is in the statute called the Declaration of Right. In that most wise, sober,
and considerate declaration, drawn up by great lawyers and great statesmen,
and not by warm and inexperienced enthusiasts, not one word is said, nor one
suggestion made, of a general right "to choose our own governors, to cashier
them for misconduct, and to form a government for ourselves".
This Declaration of Right (the act of the 1st of William and Mary, sess. 2,
ch. 2) is the cornerstone of our constitution as reinforced, explained, improved,
and in its fundamental principles for ever settled. It is called, "An Act
for declaring the rights and liberties of the subject, and for settling the
succession of the crown". You will observe that these rights and this succession
are declared in one body and bound indissolubly together.
A few years after this period, a second opportunity offered for asserting a
right of election to the crown. On the prospect of a total failure of issue
from King William, and from the Princess, afterwards Queen Anne, the consideration
of the settlement of the crown and of a further security for the liberties of
the people again came before the legislature. Did they this second time make
any provision for legalizing the crown on the spurious revolution principles
of the Old Jewry? No. They followed the principles which prevailed in the Declaration
of Right, indicating with more precision the persons who were to inherit in
the Protestant line. This act also incorporated, by the same policy, our liberties
and an hereditary succession in the same act. Instead of a right to choose our
own governors, they declared that the succession in that line (the Protestant
line drawn from James the First), was absolutely necessary "for the peace,
quiet, and security of the realm", and that it was equally urgent on them
"to maintain a certainty in the succession thereof, to which the subjects
may safely have recourse for their protection". Both these acts, in which
are heard the unerring, unambiguous oracles of revolution policy, instead of
countenancing the delusive, gipsy predictions of a "right to choose our
governors", prove to a demonstration how totally adverse the wisdom of
the nation was from turning a case of necessity into a rule of law.
Unquestionably, there was at the Revolution, in the person of King William,
a small and a temporary deviation from the strict order of a regular hereditary
succession; but it is against all genuine principles of jurisprudence to draw
a principle from a law made in a special case and regarding an individual person.
Privilegium non transit in exemplum. If ever there was a time favorable for
establishing the principle that a king of popular choice was the only legal
king, without all doubt it was at the Revolution. Its not being done at that
time is a proof that the nation was of opinion it ought not to be done at any
time. There is no person so completely ignorant of our history as not to know
that the majority in parliament of both parties were so little disposed to anything
resembling that principle that at first they were determined to place the vacant
crown, not on the head of the Prince of Orange, but on that of his wife Mary,
daughter of King James, the eldest born of the issue of that king, which they
acknowledged as undoubtedly his. It would be to repeat a very trite story, to
recall to your memory all those circumstances which demonstrated that their
accepting King William was not properly a choice; but to all those who did not
wish, in effect, to recall King James or to deluge their country in blood and
again to bring their religion, laws, and liberties into the peril they had just
escaped, it was an act of necessity, in the strictest moral sense in which necessity
can be taken.
In the very act in which for a time, and in a single case, parliament departed
from the strict order of inheritance in favor of a prince who, though not next,
was, however, very near in the line of succession, it is curious to observe
how Lord Somers, who drew the bill called the Declaration of Right, has comported
himself on that delicate occasion. It is curious to observe with what address
this temporary solution of continuity is kept from the eye, whilst all that
could be found in this act of necessity to countenance the idea of an hereditary
succession is brought forward, and fostered, and made the most of, by this great
man and by the legislature who followed him. Quitting the dry, imperative style
of an act of parliament, he makes the Lords and Commons fall to a pious, legislative
ejaculation and declare that they consider it "as a marvellous providence
and merciful goodness of God to this nation to preserve their said Majesties'
royal persons most happily to reign over us on the throne of their ancestors,
for which, from the bottom of their hearts, they return their humblest thanks
and praises". — The legislature plainly had in view the act of recognition
of the first of Queen Elizabeth, chap. 3rd, and of that of James the First,
chap. 1st, both acts strongly declaratory of the inheritable nature of the crown;
and in many parts they follow, with a nearly literal precision, the words and
even the form of thanksgiving which is found in these old declaratory statutes.
The two Houses, in the act of King William, did not thank God that they had
found a fair opportunity to assert a right to choose their own governors, much
less to make an election the only lawful title to the crown. Their having been
in a condition to avoid the very appearance of it, as much as possible, was
by them considered as a providential escape. They threw a politic, well-wrought
veil over every circumstance tending to weaken the rights which in the meliorated
order of succession they meant to perpetuate, or which might furnish a precedent
for any future departure from what they had then settled forever. Accordingly,
that they might not relax the nerves of their monarchy, and that they might
preserve a close conformity to the practice of their ancestors, as it appeared
in the declaratory statutes of Queen Mary[5] and Queen Elizabeth, in the next
clause they vest, by recognition, in their Majesties all the legal prerogatives
of the crown, declaring "that in them they are most fully, rightfully,
and entirely invested, incorporated, united, and annexed". In the clause
which follows, for preventing questions by reason of any pretended titles to
the crown, they declare (observing also in this the traditionary language, along
with the traditionary policy of the nation, and repeating as from a rubric the
language of the preceding acts of Elizabeth and James,) that on the preserving
"a certainty in the SUCCESSION thereof, the unity, peace, and tranquillity
of this nation doth, under God, wholly depend".
They knew that a doubtful title of succession would but too much resemble an
election, and that an election would be utterly destructive of the "unity,
peace, and tranquillity of this nation", which they thought to be considerations
of some moment. To provide for these objects and, therefore, to exclude for
ever the Old Jewry doctrine of "a right to choose our own governors",
they follow with a clause containing a most solemn pledge, taken from the preceding
act of Queen Elizabeth, as solemn a pledge as ever was or can be given in favor
of an hereditary succession, and as solemn a renunciation as could be made of
the principles by this Society imputed to them: The Lords spiritual and temporal,
and Commons, do, in the name of all the people aforesaid, most humbly and faithfully
submit themselves, their heirs and posterities for ever; and do faithfully promise
that they will stand to maintain, and defend their said Majesties, and also
the limitation of the crown, herein specified and contained, to the utmost of
their powers, etc. etc.
So far is it from being true that we acquired a right by the Revolution to elect
our kings that, if we had possessed it before, the English nation did at that
time most solemnly renounce and abdicate it, for themselves and for all their
posterity forever.
These gentlemen may value themselves as much as they please on their whig principles,
but I never desire to be thought a better whig than Lord Somers, or to understand
the principles of the Revolution better than those, by whom it was brought about,
or to read in the Declaration of Right any mysteries unknown to those whose
penetrating style has engraved in our ordinances, and in our hearts, the words
and spirit of that immortal law.
It is true that, aided with the powers derived from force and opportunity, the
nation was at that time, in some sense, free to take what course it pleased
for filling the throne, but only free to do so upon the same grounds on which
they might have wholly abolished their monarchy and every other part of their
constitution. However, they did not think such bold changes within their commission.
It is indeed difficult, perhaps impossible, to give limits to the mere abstract
competence of the supreme power, such as was exercised by parliament at that
time, but the limits of a moral competence subjecting, even in powers more indisputably
sovereign, occasional will to permanent reason and to the steady maxims of faith,
justice, and fixed fundamental policy, are perfectly intelligible and perfectly
binding upon those who exercise any authority, under any name or under any title,
in the state. The House of Lords, for instance, is not morally competent to
dissolve the House of Commons, no, nor even to dissolve itself, nor to abdicate,
if it would, its portion in the legislature of the kingdom. Though a king may
abdicate for his own person, he cannot abdicate for the monarchy. By as strong,
or by a stronger reason, the House of Commons cannot renounce its share of authority.
The engagement and pact of society, which generally goes by the name of the
constitution, forbids such invasion and such surrender. The constituent parts
of a state are obliged to hold their public faith with each other and with all
those who derive any serious interest under their engagements, as much as the
whole state is bound to keep its faith with separate communities. Otherwise
competence and power would soon be confounded and no law be left but the will
of a prevailing force. On this principle the succession of the crown has always
been what it now is, an hereditary succession by law; in the old line it was
a succession by the common law; in the new, by the statute law operating on
the principles of the common law, not changing the substance, but regulating
the mode and describing the persons. Both these descriptions of law are of the
same force and are derived from an equal authority emanating from the common
agreement and original compact of the state, communi sponsione reipublicae,
and as such are equally binding on king and people, too, as long as the terms
are observed and they continue the same body politic.
It is far from impossible to reconcile, if we do not suffer ourselves to be
entangled in the mazes of metaphysic sophistry, the use both of a fixed rule
and an occasional deviation: the sacredness of an hereditary principle of succession
in our government with a power of change in its application in cases of extreme
emergency. Even in that extremity (if we take the measure of our rights by our
exercise of them at the Revolution), the change is to be confined to the peccant
part only, to the part which produced the necessary deviation; and even then
it is to be effected without a decomposition of the whole civil and political
mass for the purpose of originating a new civil order out of the first elements
of society.
A state without the means of some change is without the means of its conservation.
Without such means it might even risk the loss of that part of the constitution
which it wished the most religiously to preserve. The two principles of conservation
and correction operated strongly at the two critical periods of the Restoration
and Revolution, when England found itself without a king. At both those periods
the nation had lost the bond of union in their ancient edifice; they did not,
however, dissolve the whole fabric. On the contrary, in both cases they regenerated
the deficient part of the old constitution through the parts which were not
impaired. They kept these old parts exactly as they were, that the part recovered
might be suited to them. They acted by the ancient organized states in the shape
of their old organization, and not by the organic moleculae of a disbanded people.
At no time, perhaps, did the sovereign legislature manifest a more tender regard
to that fundamental principle of British constitutional policy than at the time
of the Revolution, when it deviated from the direct line of hereditary succession.
The crown was carried somewhat out of the line in which it had before moved,
but the new line was derived from the same stock. It was still a line of hereditary
descent, still an hereditary descent in the same blood, though an hereditary
descent qualified with Protestantism. When the legislature altered the direction,
but kept the principle, they showed that they held it inviolable.
On this principle, the law of inheritance had admitted some amendment in the
old time, and long before the era of the Revolution. Some time after the Conquest,
great questions arose upon the legal principles of hereditary descent. It became
a matter of doubt whether the heir per capita or the heir per stirpes was to
succeed; but whether the heir per capita gave way when the heirdom per stirpes
took place, or the Catholic heir when the Protestant was preferred, the inheritable
principle survived with a sort of immortality through all transmigrations —
multosque per annos stat fortuna domus, et avi numerantur avorum. This is the
spirit of our constitution, not only in its settled course, but in all its revolutions.
Whoever came in, or however he came in, whether he obtained the crown by law
or by force, the hereditary succession was either continued or adopted.
The gentlemen of the Society for Revolution see nothing in that of 1688 but
the deviation from the constitution; and they take the deviation from the principle
for the principle. They have little regard to the obvious consequences of their
doctrine, though they must see that it leaves positive authority in very few
of the positive institutions of this country. When such an unwarrantable maxim
is once established, that no throne is lawful but the elective, no one act of
the princes who preceded this era of fictitious election can be valid. Do these
theorists mean to imitate some of their predecessors who dragged the bodies
of our ancient sovereigns out of the quiet of their tombs? Do they mean to attaint
and disable backward all the kings that have reigned before the Revolution,
and consequently to stain the throne of England with the blot of a continual
usurpation? Do they mean to invalidate, annul, or to call into question, together
with the titles of the whole line of our kings, that great body of our statute
law which passed under those whom they treat as usurpers, to annul laws of inestimable
value to our liberties ? of as great value at least as any which have passed
at or since the period of the Revolution? If kings who did not owe their crown
to the choice of their people had no title to make laws, what will become of
the statute de tallagio non concedendo? — of the petition of right? —
of the act of habeas corpus? Do these new doctors of the rights of men presume
to assert that King James the Second, who came to the crown as next of blood,
according to the rules of a then unqualified succession, was not to all intents
and purposes a lawful king of England before he had done any of those acts which
were justly construed into an abdication of his crown? If he was not, much trouble
in parliament might have been saved at the period these gentlemen commemorate.
But King James was a bad king with a good title, and not an usurper. The princes
who succeeded, according to the act of parliament which settled the crown on
the Electress Sophia and on her descendants, being Protestants, came in as much
by a title of inheritance as King James did. He came in according to the law
as it stood at his accession to the crown; and the princes of the House of Brunswick
came to the inheritance of the crown, not by election, but by the law as it
stood at their several accessions of Protestant descent and inheritance, as
I hope I have shown sufficiently.
The law by which this royal family is specifically destined to the succession
is the act of the 12th and 13th of King William. The terms of this act bind
"us and our heirs, and our posterity, to them, their heirs, and their posterity",
being Protestants, to the end of time, in the same words as the Declaration
of Right had bound us to the heirs of King William and Queen Mary. It therefore
secures both an hereditary crown and an hereditary allegiance. On what ground,
except the constitutional policy of forming an establishment to secure that
kind of succession which is to preclude a choice of the people forever, could
the legislature have fastidiously rejected the fair and abundant choice which
our country presented to them and searched in strange lands for a foreign princess
from whose womb the line of our future rulers were to derive their title to
govern millions of men through a series of ages?
The Princess Sophia was named in the act of settlement of the 12th and 13th
of King William for a stock and root of inheritance to our kings, and not for
her merits as a temporary administratrix of a power which she might not, and
in fact did not, herself ever exercise. She was adopted for one reason, and
for one only, because, says the act, "the most excellent Princess Sophia,
Electress and Duchess Dowager of Hanover, is daughter of the most excellent
Princess Elizabeth, late Queen of Bohemia, daughter of our late sovereign lord
King James the First, of happy memory, and is hereby declared to be the next
in succession in the Protestant line etc., etc., and the crown shall continue
to the heirs of her body, being Protestants." This limitation was made
by parliament, that through the Princess Sophia an inheritable line not only
was to be continued in future, but (what they thought very material) that through
her it was to be connected with the old stock of inheritance in King James the
First, in order that the monarchy might preserve an unbroken unity through all
ages and might be preserved (with safety to our religion) in the old approved
mode by descent, in which, if our liberties had been once endangered, they had
often, through all storms and struggles of prerogative and privilege, been preserved.
They did well. No experience has taught us that in any other course or method
than that of an hereditary crown our liberties can be regularly perpetuated
and preserved sacred as our hereditary right.
An irregular, convulsive movement may be necessary to throw off an irregular,
convulsive disease. But the course of succession is the healthy habit of the
British constitution. Was it that the legislature wanted, at the act for the
limitation of the crown in the Hanoverian line, drawn through the female descendants
of James the First, a due sense of the inconveniences of having two or three,
or possibly more, foreigners in succession to the British throne? No! —
they had a due sense of the evils which might happen from such foreign rule,
and more than a due sense of them. But a more decisive proof cannot be given
of the full conviction of the British nation that the principles of the Revolution
did not authorize them to elect kings at their pleasure, and without any attention
to the ancient fundamental principles of our government, than their continuing
to adopt a plan of hereditary Protestant succession in the old line, with all
the dangers and all the inconveniences of its being a foreign line full before
their eyes and operating with the utmost force upon their minds.
A few years ago I should be ashamed to overload a matter so capable of supporting
itself by the then unnecessary support of any argument; but this seditious,
unconstitutional doctrine is now publicly taught, avowed, and printed. The dislike
I feel to revolutions, the signals for which have so often been given from pulpits;
the spirit of change that is gone abroad; the total contempt which prevails
with you, and may come to prevail with us, of all ancient institutions when
set in opposition to a present sense of convenience or to the bent of a present
inclination: all these considerations make it not unadvisable, in my opinion,
to call back our attention to the true principles of our own domestic laws;
that you, my French friend, should begin to know, and that we should continue
to cherish them. We ought not, on either side of the water, to suffer ourselves
to be imposed upon by the counterfeit wares which some persons, by a double
fraud, export to you in illicit bottoms as raw commodities of British growth,
though wholly alien to our soil, in order afterwards to smuggle them back again
into this country, manufactured after the newest Paris fashion of an improved
liberty.
The people of England will not ape the fashions they have never tried, nor go
back to those which they have found mischievous on trial. They look upon the
legal hereditary succession of their crown as among their rights, not as among
their wrongs; as a benefit, not as a grievance; as a security for their liberty,
not as a badge of servitude. They look on the frame of their commonwealth, such
as it stands, to be of inestimable value, and they conceive the undisturbed
succession of the crown to be a pledge of the stability and perpetuity of all
the other members of our constitution.
I shall beg leave, before I go any further, to take notice of some paltry artifices
which the abettors of election, as the only lawful title to the crown, are ready
to employ in order to render the support of the just principles of our constitution
a task somewhat invidious. These sophisters substitute a fictitious cause and
feigned personages, in whose favor they suppose you engaged whenever you defend
the inheritable nature of the crown. It is common with them to dispute as if
they were in a conflict with some of those exploded fanatics of slavery, who
formerly maintained what I believe no creature now maintains, "that the
crown is held by divine hereditary and indefeasible right". — These
old fanatics of single arbitrary power dogmatized as if hereditary royalty was
the only lawful government in the world, just as our new fanatics of popular
arbitrary power maintain that a popular election is the sole lawful source of
authority. The old prerogative enthusiasts, it is true, did speculate foolishly,
and perhaps impiously too, as if monarchy had more of a divine sanction than
any other mode of government; and as if a right to govern by inheritance were
in strictness indefeasible in every person who should be found in the succession
to a throne, and under every circumstance, which no civil or political right
can be. But an absurd opinion concerning the king's hereditary right to the
crown does not prejudice one that is rational and bottomed upon solid principles
of law and policy. If all the absurd theories of lawyers and divines were to
vitiate the objects in which they are conversant, we should have no law and
no religion left in the world. But an absurd theory on one side of a question
forms no justification for alleging a false fact or promulgating mischievous
maxims on the other.
THE second claim of the Revolution Society is "a right of cashiering their
governors for misconduct". Perhaps the apprehensions our ancestors entertained
of forming such a precedent as that "of cashiering for misconduct"
was the cause that the declaration of the act, which implied the abdication
of King James, was, if it had any fault, rather too guarded and too circumstantial.[6]
But all this guard and all this accumulation of circumstances serves to show
the spirit of caution which predominated in the national councils in a situation
in which men irritated by oppression, and elevated by a triumph over it, are
apt to abandon themselves to violent and extreme courses; it shows the anxiety
of the great men who influenced the conduct of affairs at that great event to
make the Revolution a parent of settlement, and not a nursery of future revolutions.
No government could stand a moment if it could be blown down with anything so
loose and indefinite as an opinion of "misconduct". They who led at
the Revolution grounded the virtual abdication of King James upon no such light
and uncertain principle. They charged him with nothing less than a design, confirmed
by a multitude of illegal overt acts, to subvert the Protestant church and state,
and their fundamental, unquestionable laws and liberties; they charged him with
having broken the original contract between king and people. This was more than
misconduct. A grave and overruling necessity obliged them to take the step they
took, and took with infinite reluctance, as under that most rigorous of all
laws. Their trust for the future preservation of the constitution was not in
future revolutions. The grand policy of all their regulations was to render
it almost impracticable for any future sovereign to compel the states of the
kingdom to have again recourse to those violent remedies. They left the crown
what, in the eye and estimation of law, it had ever been-perfectly irresponsible.
In order to lighten the crown still further, they aggravated responsibility
on ministers of state. By the statute of the 1st of King William, sess. 2nd,
called "the act for declaring the rights and liberties of the subject,
and for settling the succession of the crown", they enacted that the ministers
should serve the crown on the terms of that declaration. They secured soon after
the frequent meetings of parliament, by which the whole government would be
under the constant inspection and active control of the popular representative
and of the magnates of the kingdom. In the next great constitutional act, that
of the 12th and 13th of King William, for the further limitation of the crown
and better securing the rights and liberties of the subject, they provided "that
no pardon under the great seal of England should be pleadable to an impeachment
by the Commons in parliament". The rule laid down for government in the
Declaration of Right, the constant inspection of parliament, the practical claim
of impeachment, they thought infinitely a better security, not only for their
constitutional liberty, but against the vices of administration, than the reservation
of a right so difficult in the practice, so uncertain in the issue, and often
so mischievous in the consequences, as that of "cashiering their governors".
Dr. Price, in this sermon,[7] condemns very properly the practice of gross,
adulatory addresses to kings. Instead of this fulsome style, he proposes that
his Majesty should be told, on occasions of congratulation, that "he is
to consider himself as more properly the servant than the sovereign of his people".
For a compliment, this new form of address does not seem to be very soothing.
Those who are servants in name, as well as in effect, do not like to be told
of their situation, their duty, and their obligations. The slave, in the old
play, tells his master, "Haec commemoratio est quasi exprobatio".
It is not pleasant as compliment; it is not wholesome as instruction. After
all, if the king were to bring himself to echo this new kind of address, to
adopt it in terms, and even to take the appellation of Servant of the People
as his royal style, how either he or we should be much mended by it I cannot
imagine. I have seen very assuming letters, signed "Your most obedient,
humble servant". The proudest denomination that ever was endured on earth
took a title of still greater humility than that which is now proposed for sovereigns
by the Apostle of Liberty. Kings and nations were trampled upon by the foot
of one calling himself "the Servant of Servants"; and mandates for
deposing sovereigns were sealed with the signet of "the Fisherman".
I should have considered all this as no more than a sort of flippant, vain discourse,
in which, as in an unsavory fume, several persons suffer the spirit of liberty
to evaporate, if it were not plainly in support of the idea and a part of the
scheme of "cashiering kings for misconduct". In that light it is worth
some observation.
Kings, in one sense, are undoubtedly the servants of the people because their
power has no other rational end than that of the general advantage; but it is
not true that they are, in the ordinary sense (by our constitution, at least),
anything like servants; the essence of whose situation is to obey the commands
of some other and to be removable at pleasure. But the king of Great Britain
obeys no other person; all other persons are individually, and collectively
too, under him and owe to him a legal obedience. The law, which knows neither
to flatter nor to insult, calls this high magistrate not our servant, as this
humble divine calls him, but "our sovereign Lord the king"; and we,
on our parts, have learned to speak only the primitive language of the law,
and not the confused jargon of their Babylonian pulpits.
As he is not to obey us, but as we are to obey the law in him, our constitution
has made no sort of provision toward rendering him, as a servant, in any degree
responsible. Our constitution knows nothing of a magistrate like the Justicia
of Aragon, nor of any court legally appointed, nor of any process legally settled,
for submitting the king to the responsibility belonging to all servants. In
this he is not distinguished from the Commons and the Lords, who, in their several
public capacities, can never be called to an account for their conduct, although
the Revolution Society chooses to assert, in direct opposition to one of the
wisest and most beautiful parts of our constitution, that "a king is no
more than the first servant of the public, created by it, and responsible to
it"
Ill would our ancestors at the Revolution have deserved their fame for wisdom
if they had found no security for their freedom but in rendering their government
feeble in its operations, and precarious in its tenure; if they had been able
to contrive no better remedy against arbitrary power than civil confusion. Let
these gentlemen state who that representative public is to whom they will affirm
the king, as a servant, to be responsible. It will then be time enough for me
to produce to them the positive statute law which affirms that he is not.
The ceremony of cashiering kings, of which these gentlemen talk so much at their
ease, can rarely, if ever, be performed without force. It then becomes a case
of war, and not of constitution. Laws are commanded to hold their tongues amongst
arms, and tribunals fall to the ground with the peace they are no longer able
to uphold. The Revolution of 1688 was obtained by a just war, in the only case
in which any war, and much more a civil war, can be just. Justa bella quibus
necessaria. The question of dethroning or, if these gentlemen like the phrase
better, "cashiering kings" will always be, as it has always been,
an extraordinary question of state, and wholly out of the law — a question
(like all other questions of state) of dispositions and of means and of probable
consequences rather than of positive rights. As it was not made for common abuses,
so it is not to be agitated by common minds. The speculative line of demarcation
where obedience ought to end and resistance must begin is faint, obscure, and
not easily definable. It is not a single act, or a single event, which determines
it. Governments must be abused and deranged, indeed, before it can be thought
of; and the prospect of the future must be as bad as the experience of the past.
When things are in that lamentable condition, the nature of the disease is to
indicate the remedy to those whom nature has qualified to administer in extremities
this critical, ambiguous, bitter potion to a distempered state. Times and occasions
and provocations will teach their own lessons. The wise will determine from
the gravity of the case; the irritable, from sensibility to oppression; the
high-minded, from disdain and indignation at abusive power in unworthy hands;
the brave and bold, from the love of honorable danger in a generous cause; but,
with or without right, a revolution will be the very last resource of the thinking
and the good.
THE third head of right, asserted by the pulpit of the Old Jewry, namely, the
"right to form a government for ourselves", has, at least, as little
countenance from anything done at the Revolution, either in precedent or principle,
as the two first of their claims. The Revolution was made to preserve our ancient,
indisputable laws and liberties and that ancient constitution of government
which is our only security for law and liberty. If you are desirous of knowing
the spirit of our constitution and the policy which predominated in that great
period which has secured it to this hour, pray look for both in our histories,
in our records, in our acts of parliament, and journals of parliament, and not
in the sermons of the Old Jewry and the after-dinner toasts of the Revolution
Society. In the former you will find other ideas and another language. Such
a claim is as ill-suited to our temper and wishes as it is unsupported by any
appearance of authority. The very idea of the fabrication of a new government
is enough to fill us with disgust and horror. We wished at the period of the
Revolution, and do now wish, to derive all we possess as an inheritance from
our forefathers. Upon that body and stock of inheritance we have taken care
not to inoculate any cyon alien to the nature of the original plant. All the
reformations we have hitherto made have proceeded upon the principle of reverence
to antiquity; and I hope, nay, I am persuaded, that all those which possibly
may be made hereafter will be carefully formed upon analogical precedent, authority,
and example.
Our oldest reformation is that of Magna Charta. You will see that Sir Edward
Coke, that great oracle of our law, and indeed all the great men who follow
him, to Blackstone,[8] are industrious to prove the pedigree of our liberties.
They endeavor to prove that the ancient charter, the Magna Charta of King John,
was connected with another positive charter from Henry I, and that both the
one and the other were nothing more than a reaffirmance of the still more ancient
standing law of the kingdom. In the matter of fact, for the greater part these
authors appear to be in the right; perhaps not always; but if the lawyers mistake
in some particulars, it proves my position still the more strongly, because
it demonstrates the powerful prepossession toward antiquity, with which the
minds of all our lawyers and legislators, and of all the people whom they wish
to influence, have been always filled, and the stationary policy of this kingdom
in considering their most sacred rights and franchises as an inheritance.
In the famous law of the 3rd of Charles I, called the Petition of Right, the
parliament says to the king, "Your subjects have inherited this freedom",
claiming their franchises not on abstract principles "as the rights of
men", but as the rights of Englishmen, and as a patrimony derived from
their forefathers. Selden and the other profoundly learned men who drew this
Petition of Right were as well acquainted, at least, with all the general theories
concerning the "rights of men" as any of the discoursers in our pulpits
or on your tribune; full as well as Dr. Price or as the Abbe Sieyes. But, for
reasons worthy of that practical wisdom which superseded their theoretic science,
they preferred this positive, recorded, hereditary title to all which can be
dear to the man and the citizen, to that vague speculative right which exposed
their sure inheritance to be scrambled for and torn to pieces by every wild,
litigious spirit.
The same policy pervades all the laws which have since been made for the preservation
of our liberties. In the 1st of William and Mary, in the famous statute called
the Declaration of Right, the two Houses utter not a syllable of "a right
to frame a government for themselves". You will see that their whole care
was to secure the religion, laws, and liberties that had been long possessed,
and had been lately endangered. "Taking[9] into their most serious consideration
the best means for making such an establishment, that their religion, laws,
and liberties might not be in danger of being again subverted", they auspicate
all their proceedings by stating as some of those best means, "in the first
place" to do "as their ancestors in like cases have usually done for
vindicating their ancient rights and liberties, to declare" — and
then they pray the king and queen "that it may be declared and enacted
that all and singular the rights and liberties asserted and declared are the
true ancient and indubitable rights and liberties of the people of this kingdom".
You will observe that from Magna Charta to the Declaration of Right it has been
the uniform policy of our constitution to claim and assert our liberties as
an entailed inheritance derived to us from our forefathers, and to be transmitted
to our posterity — as an estate specially belonging to the people of this
kingdom, without any reference whatever to any other more general or prior right.
By this means our constitution preserves a unity in so great a diversity of
its parts. We have an inheritable crown, an inheritable peerage, and a House
of Commons and a people inheriting privileges, franchises, and liberties from
a long line of ancestors.
This policy appears to me to be the result of profound reflection, or rather
the happy effect of following nature, which is wisdom without reflection, and
above it. A spirit of innovation is generally the result of a selfish temper
and confined views. People will not look forward to posterity, who never look
backward to their ancestors. Besides, the people of England well know that the
idea of inheritance furnishes a sure principle of conservation and a sure principle
of transmission, without at all excluding a principle of improvement. It leaves
acquisition free, but it secures what it acquires. Whatever advantages are obtained
by a state proceeding on these maxims are locked fast as in a sort of family
settlement, grasped as in a kind of mortmain forever. By a constitutional policy,
working after the pattern of nature, we receive, we hold, we transmit our government
and our privileges in the same manner in which we enjoy and transmit our property
and our lives. The institutions of policy, the goods of fortune, the gifts of
providence are handed down to us, and from us, in the same course and order.
Our political system is placed in a just correspondence and symmetry with the
order of the world and with the mode of existence decreed to a permanent body
composed of transitory parts, wherein, by the disposition of a stupendous wisdom,
molding together the great mysterious incorporation of the human race, the whole,
at one time, is never old or middle-aged or young, but, in a condition of unchangeable
constancy, moves on through the varied tenor of perpetual decay, fall, renovation,
and progression. Thus, by preserving the method of nature in the conduct of
the state, in what we improve we are never wholly new; in what we retain we
are never wholly obsolete. By adhering in this manner and on those principles
to our forefathers, we are guided not by the superstition of antiquarians, but
by the spirit of philosophic analogy. In this choice of inheritance we have
given to our frame of polity the image of a relation in blood, binding up the
constitution of our country with our dearest domestic ties, adopting our fundamental
laws into the bosom of our family affections, keeping inseparable and cherishing
with the warmth of all their combined and mutually reflected charities our state,
our hearths, our sepulchres, and our altars.
Through the same plan of a conformity to nature in our artificial institutions,
and by calling in the aid of her unerring and powerful instincts to fortify
the fallible and feeble contrivances of our reason, we have derived several
other, and those no small, benefits from considering our liberties in the light
of an inheritance. Always acting as if in the presence of canonized forefathers,
the spirit of freedom, leading in itself to misrule and excess, is tempered
with an awful gravity. This idea of a liberal descent inspires us with a sense
of habitual native dignity which prevents that upstart insolence almost inevitably
adhering to and disgracing those who are the first acquirers of any distinction.
By this means our liberty becomes a noble freedom.
It carries an imposing and majestic aspect. It has a pedigree and illustrating
ancestors. It has its bearings and its ensigns armorial. It has its gallery
of portraits, its monumental inscriptions, its records, evidences, and titles.
We procure reverence to our civil institutions on the principle upon which nature
teaches us to revere individual men: on account of their age and on account
of those from whom they are descended. All your sophisters cannot produce anything
better adapted to preserve a rational and manly freedom than the course that
we have pursued, who have chosen our nature rather than our speculations, our
breasts rather than our inventions, for the great conservatories and magazines
of our rights and privileges.
YOU MIGHT, IF YOU PLEASED, have profited of our example and have given to your
recovered freedom a correspondent dignity. Your privileges, though discontinued,
were not lost to memory. Your constitution, it is true, whilst you were out
of possession, suffered waste and dilapidation; but you possessed in some parts
the walls and in all the foundations of a noble and venerable castle. You might
have repaired those walls; you might have built on those old foundations. Your
constitution was suspended before it was perfected, but you had the elements
of a constitution very nearly as good as could be wished. In your old states
you possessed that variety of parts corresponding with the various descriptions
of which your community was happily composed; you had all that combination and
all that opposition of interests; you had that action and counteraction which,
in the natural and in the political world, from the reciprocal struggle of discordant
powers, draws out the harmony of the universe. These opposed and conflicting
interests which you considered as so great a blemish in your old and in our
present constitution interpose a salutary check to all precipitate resolutions.
They render deliberation a matter, not of choice, but of necessity; they make
all change a subject of compromise, which naturally begets moderation; they
produce temperaments preventing the sore evil of harsh, crude, unqualified reformations,
and rendering all the headlong exertions of arbitrary power, in the few or in
the many, for ever impracticable. Through that diversity of members and interests,
general liberty had as many securities as there were separate views in the several
orders, whilst, by pressing down the whole by the weight of a real monarchy,
the separate parts would have been prevented from warping and starting from
their allotted places.
You had all these advantages in your ancient states, but you chose to act as
if you had never been molded into civil society and had everything to begin
anew. You began ill, because you began by despising everything that belonged
to you. You set up your trade without a capital. If the last generations of
your country appeared without much luster in your eyes, you might have passed
them by and derived your claims from a more early race of ancestors. Under a
pious predilection for those ancestors, your imaginations would have realized
in them a standard of virtue and wisdom beyond the vulgar practice of the hour;
and you would have risen with the example to whose imitation you aspired. Respecting
your forefathers, you would have been taught to respect yourselves. You would
not have chosen to consider the French as a people of yesterday, as a nation
of lowborn servile wretches until the emancipating year of 1789. In order to
furnish, at the expense of your honor, an excuse to your apologists here for
several enormities of yours, you would not have been content to be represented
as a gang of Maroon slaves suddenly broke loose from the house of bondage, and
therefore to be pardoned for your abuse of the liberty to which you were not
accustomed and ill fitted. Would it not, my worthy friend, have been wiser to
have you thought, what I, for one, always thought you, a generous and gallant
nation, long misled to your disadvantage by your high and romantic sentiments
of fidelity, honor, and loyalty; that events had been unfavorable to you, but
that you were not enslaved through any illiberal or servile disposition; that
in your most devoted submission you were actuated by a principle of public spirit,
and that it was your country you worshiped in the person of your king? Had you
made it to be understood that in the delusion of this amiable error you had
gone further than your wise ancestors, that you were resolved to resume your
ancient privileges, whilst you preserved the spirit of your ancient and your
recent loyalty and honor; or if, diffident of yourselves and not clearly discerning
the almost obliterated constitution of your ancestors, you had looked to your
neighbors in this land who had kept alive the ancient principles and models
of the old common law of Europe meliorated and adapted to its present state
— by following wise examples you would have given new examples of wisdom
to the world. You would have rendered the cause of liberty venerable in the
eyes of every worthy mind in every nation. You would have shamed despotism from
the earth by showing that freedom was not only reconcilable, but, as when well
disciplined it is, auxiliary to law. You would have had an unoppressive but
a productive revenue. You would have had a flourishing commerce to feed it.
You would have had a free constitution, a potent monarchy, a disciplined army,
a reformed and venerated clergy, a mitigated but spirited nobility to lead your
virtue, not to overlay it; you would have had a liberal order of commons to
emulate and to recruit that nobility; you would have had a protected, satisfied,
laborious, and obedient people, taught to seek and to recognize the happiness
that is to be found by virtue in all conditions; in which consists the true
moral equality of mankind, and not in that monstrous fiction which, by inspiring
false ideas and vain expectations into men destined to travel in the obscure
walk of laborious life, serves only to aggravate and embitter that real inequality
which it never can remove, and which the order of civil life establishes as
much for the benefit of those whom it must leave in a humble state as those
whom it is able to exalt to a condition more splendid, but not more happy. You
had a smooth and easy career of felicity and glory laid open to you, beyond
anything recorded in the history of the world, but you have shown that difficulty
is good for man.
COMPUTE your gains: see what is got by those extravagant and presumptuous speculations
which have taught your leaders to despise all their predecessors, and all their
contemporaries, and even to despise themselves until the moment in which they
become truly despicable. By following those false lights, France has bought
undisguised calamities at a higher price than any nation has purchased the most
unequivocal blessings! France has bought poverty by crime! France has not sacrificed
her virtue to her interest, but she has abandoned her interest, that she might
prostitute her virtue. All other nations have begun the fabric of a new government,
or the reformation of an old, by establishing originally or by enforcing with
greater exactness some rites or other of religion. All other people have laid
the foundations of civil freedom in severer manners and a system of a more austere
and masculine morality. France, when she let loose the reins of regal authority,
doubled the license of a ferocious dissoluteness in manners and of an insolent
irreligion in opinions and practice, and has extended through all ranks of life,
as if she were communicating some privilege or laying open some secluded benefit,
all the unhappy corruptions that usually were the disease of wealth and power.
This is one of the new principles of equality in France.
France, by the perfidy of her leaders, has utterly disgraced the tone of lenient
council in the cabinets of princes, and disarmed it of its most potent topics.
She has sanctified the dark, suspicious maxims of tyrannous distrust, and taught
kings to tremble at (what will hereafter be called) the delusive plausibilities
of moral politicians. Sovereigns will consider those who advise them to place
an unlimited confidence in their people as subverters of their thrones, as traitors
who aim at their destruction by leading their easy good-nature, under specious
pretenses, to admit combinations of bold and faithless men into a participation
of their power. This alone (if there were nothing else) is an irreparable calamity
to you and to mankind. Remember that your parliament of Paris told your king
that, in calling the states together, he had nothing to fear but the prodigal
excess of their zeal in providing for the support of the throne. It is right
that these men should hide their heads. It is right that they should bear their
part in the ruin which their counsel has brought on their sovereign and their
country. Such sanguine declarations tend to lull authority asleep; to encourage
it rashly to engage in perilous adventures of untried policy; to neglect those
provisions, preparations, and precautions which distinguish benevolence from
imbecility, and without which no man can answer for the salutary effect of any
abstract plan of government or of freedom. For want of these, they have seen
the medicine of the state corrupted into its poison. They have seen the French
rebel against a mild and lawful monarch with more fury, outrage, and insult
than ever any people has been known to rise against the most illegal usurper
or the most sanguinary tyrant. Their resistance was made to concession, their
revolt was from protection, their blow was aimed at a hand holding out graces,
favors, and immunities.
This was unnatural. The rest is in order. They have found their punishment in
their success: laws overturned; tribunals subverted; industry without vigor;
commerce expiring; the revenue unpaid, yet the people impoverished; a church
pillaged, and a state not relieved; civil and military anarchy made the constitution
of the kingdom; everything human and divine sacrificed to the idol of public
credit, and national bankruptcy the consequence; and, to crown all, the paper
securities of new, precarious, tottering power, the discredited paper securities
of impoverished fraud and beggared rapine, held out as a currency for the support
of an empire in lieu of the two great recognized species that represent the
lasting, conventional credit of mankind, which disappeared and hid themselves
in the earth from whence they came, when the principle of property, whose creatures
and representatives they are, was systematically subverted.
Were all these dreadful things necessary? Were they the inevitable results of
the desperate struggle of determined patriots, compelled to wade through blood
and tumult to the quiet shore of a tranquil and prosperous liberty? No! nothing
like it. The fresh ruins of France, which shock our feelings wherever we can
turn our eyes, are not the devastation of civil war; they are the sad but instructive
monuments of rash and ignorant counsel in time of profound peace. They are the
display of inconsiderate and presumptuous, because unresisted and irresistible,
authority. The persons who have thus squandered away the precious treasure of
their crimes, the persons who have made this prodigal and wild waste of public
evils (the last stake reserved for the ultimate ransom of the state) have met
in their progress with little or rather with no opposition at all. Their whole
march was more like a triumphal procession than the progress of a war. Their
pioneers have gone before them and demolished and laid everything level at their
feet. Not one drop of their blood have they shed in the cause of the country
they have ruined. They have made no sacrifices to their projects of greater
consequence than their shoebuckles, whilst they were imprisoning their king,
murdering their fellow citizens, and bathing in tears and plunging in poverty
and distress thousands of worthy men and worthy families. Their cruelty has
not even been the base result of fear. It has been the effect of their sense
of perfect safety, in authorizing treasons, robberies, rapes, assassinations,
slaughters, and burnings throughout their harassed land. But the cause of all
was plain from the beginning.
THIS unforced choice, this fond election of evil, would appear perfectly unaccountable
if we did not consider the composition of the National Assembly. I do not mean
its formal constitution, which, as it now stands, is exceptionable enough, but
the materials of which, in a great measure, it is composed, which is of ten
thousand times greater consequence than all the formalities in the world. If
we were to know nothing of this assembly but by its title and function, no colors
could paint to the imagination anything more venerable. In that light the mind
of an inquirer, subdued by such an awful image as that of the virtue and wisdom
of a whole people collected into a focus, would pause and hesitate in condemning
things even of the very worst aspect. Instead of blamable, they would appear
only mysterious. But no name, no power, no function, no artificial institution
whatsoever can make the men of whom any system of authority is composed any
other than God, and nature, and education, and their habits of life have made
them. Capacities beyond these the people have not to give. Virtue and wisdom
may be the objects of their choice, but their choice confers neither the one
nor the other on those upon whom they lay their ordaining hands. They have not
the engagement of nature, they have not the promise of revelation, for any such
powers.
After I had read over the list of the persons and descriptions elected into
the Tiers Etat, nothing which they afterwards did could appear astonishing.
Among them, indeed, I saw some of known rank, some of shining talents; but of
any practical experience in the state, not one man was to be found. The best
were only men of theory. But whatever the distinguished few may have been, it
is the substance and mass of the body which constitutes its character and must
finally determine its direction. In all bodies, those who will lead must also,
in a considerable degree, follow. They must conform their propositions to the
taste, talent, and disposition of those whom they wish to conduct; therefore,
if an assembly is viciously or feebly composed in a very great part of it, nothing
but such a supreme degree of virtue as very rarely appears in the world, and
for that reason cannot enter into calculation, will prevent the men of talent
disseminated through it from becoming only the expert instruments of absurd
projects! If, what is the more likely event, instead of that unusual degree
of virtue, they should be actuated by sinister ambition and a lust of meretricious
glory, then the feeble part of the assembly, to whom at first they conform,
becomes in its turn the dupe and instrument of their designs. In this political
traffic, the leaders will be obliged to bow to the ignorance of their followers,
and the followers to become subservient to the worst designs of their leaders.
To secure any degree of sobriety in the propositions made by the leaders in
any public assembly, they ought to respect, in some degree perhaps to fear,
those whom they conduct. To be led any otherwise than blindly, the followers
must be qualified, if not for actors, at least for judges; they must also be
judges of natural weight and authority. Nothing can secure a steady and moderate
conduct in such assemblies but that the body of them should be respectably composed,
in point of condition in life or permanent property, of education, and of such
habits as enlarge and liberalize the understanding.
In the calling of the States-General of France, the first thing that struck
me was a great departure from the ancient course. I found the representation
for the Third Estate composed of six hundred persons. They were equal in number
to the representatives of both the other orders. If the orders were to act separately,
the number would not, beyond the consideration of the expense, be of much moment.
But when it became apparent that the three orders were to be melted down into
one, the policy and necessary effect of this numerous representation became
obvious. A very small desertion from either of the other two orders must throw
the power of both into the hands of the third. In fact, the whole power of the
state was soon resolved into that body. Its due composition became therefore
of infinitely the greater importance.
Judge, Sir, of my surprise when I found that a very great proportion of the
assembly (a majority, I believe, of the members who attended) was composed of
practitioners in the law. It was composed, not of distinguished magistrates,
who had given pledges to their country of their science, prudence, and integrity;
not of leading advocates, the glory of the bar; not of renowned professors in
universities; — but for the far greater part, as it must in such a number,
of the inferior, unlearned, mechanical, merely instrumental members of the profession.
There were distinguished exceptions, but the general composition was of obscure
provincial advocates, of stewards of petty local jurisdictions, country attornies,
notaries, and the whole train of the ministers of municipal litigation, the
fomenters and conductors of the petty war of village vexation. From the moment
I read the list, I saw distinctly, and very nearly as it has happened, all that
was to follow.
The degree of estimation in which any profession is held becomes the standard
of the estimation in which the professors hold themselves. Whatever the personal
merits of many individual lawyers might have been, and in many it was undoubtedly
very considerable, in that military kingdom no part of the profession had been
much regarded except the highest of all, who often united to their professional
offices great family splendor, and were invested with great power and authority.
These certainly were highly respected, and even with no small degree of awe.
The next rank was not much esteemed; the mechanical part was in a very low degree
of repute.
Whenever the supreme authority is vested in a body so composed, it must evidently
produce the consequences of supreme authority placed in the hands of men not
taught habitually to respect themselves, who had no previous fortune in character
at stake, who could not be expected to bear with moderation, or to conduct with
discretion, a power which they themselves, more than any others, must be surprised
to find in their hands. Who could flatter himself that these men, suddenly and,
as it were, by enchantment snatched from the humblest rank of subordination,
would not be intoxicated with their unprepared greatness? Who could conceive
that men who are habitually meddling, daring, subtle, active, of litigious dispositions
and unquiet minds would easily fall back into their old condition of obscure
contention and laborious, low, unprofitable chicane? Who could doubt but that,
at any expense to the state, of which they understood nothing, they must pursue
their private interests, which they understand but too well? It was not an event
depending on chance or contingency. It was inevitable; it was necessary; it
was planted in the nature of things. They must join (if their capacity did not
permit them to lead) in any project which could procure to them a litigious
constitution; which could lay open to them those innumerable lucrative jobs
which follow in the train of all great convulsions and revolutions in the state,
and particularly in all great and violent permutations of property. Was it to
be expected that they would attend to the stability of property, whose existence
had always depended upon whatever rendered property questionable, ambiguous,
and insecure? Their objects would be enlarged with their elevation, but their
disposition and habits, and mode of accomplishing their designs, must remain
the same.
Well! but these men were to be tempered and restrained by other descriptions,
of more sober and more enlarged understandings. Were they then to be awed by
the supereminent authority and awful dignity of a handful of country clowns
who have seats in that assembly, some of whom are said not to be able to read
and write, and by not a greater number of traders who, though somewhat more
instructed and more conspicuous in the order of society, had never known anything
beyond their counting house? No! Both these descriptions were more formed to
be overborne and swayed by the intrigues and artifices of lawyers than to become
their counterpoise. With such a dangerous disproportion, the whole must needs
be governed by them. To the faculty of law was joined a pretty considerable
proportion of the faculty of medicine. This faculty had not, any more than that
of the law, possessed in France its just estimation. Its professors, therefore,
must have the qualities of men not habituated to sentiments of dignity. But
supposing they had ranked as they ought to do, and as with us they do actually,
the sides of sickbeds are not the academies for forming statesmen and legislators.
Then came the dealers in stocks and funds, who must be eager, at any expense,
to change their ideal paper wealth for the more solid substance of land. To
these were joined men of other descriptions, from whom as little knowledge of,
or attention to, the interests of a great state was to be expected, and as little
regard to the stability of any institution; men formed to be instruments, not
controls. Such in general was the composition of the Tiers Etat in the National
Assembly, in which was scarcely to be perceived the slightest traces of what
we call the natural landed interest of the country.
We know that the British House of Commons, without shutting its doors to any
merit in any class, is, by the sure operation of adequate causes, filled with
everything illustrious in rank, in descent, in hereditary and in acquired opulence,
in cultivated talents, in military, civil, naval, and politic distinction that
the country can afford. But supposing, what hardly can be supposed as a case,
that the House of Commons should be composed in the same manner with the Tiers
Etat in France, would this dominion of chicane be borne with patience or even
conceived without horror? God forbid I should insinuate anything derogatory
to that profession which is another priesthood, administering the rights of
sacred justice. But whilst I revere men in the functions which belong to them,
and would do as much as one man can do to prevent their exclusion from any,
I cannot, to flatter them, give the lie to nature. They are good and useful
in the composition; they must be mischievous if they preponderate so as virtually
to become the whole. Their very excellence in their peculiar functions may be
far from a qualification for others. It cannot escape observation that when
men are too much confined to professional and faculty habits and, as it were,
inveterate in the recurrent employment of that narrow circle, they are rather
disabled than qualified for whatever depends on the knowledge of mankind, on
experience in mixed affairs, on a comprehensive, connected view of the various,
complicated, external and internal interests which go to the formation of that
multifarious thing called a state.
After all, if the House of Commons were to have a wholly professional and faculty
composition, what is the power of the House of Commons, circumscribed and shut
in by the immovable barriers of laws, usages, positive rules of doctrine and
practice, counterpoised by the House of Lords, and every moment of its existence
at the discretion of the crown to continue, prorogue, or dissolve us? The power
of the House of Commons, direct or indirect, is indeed great; and long may it
be able to preserve its greatness and the spirit belonging to true greatness
at the full; and it will do so as long as it can keep the breakers of law in
India from becoming the makers of law for England. The power, however, of the
House of Commons, when least diminished, is as a drop of water in the ocean,
compared to that residing in a settled majority of your National Assembly. That
assembly, since the destruction of the orders, has no fundamental law, no strict
convention, no respected usage to restrain it. Instead of finding themselves
obliged to conform to a fixed constitution, they have a power to make a constitution
which shall conform to their designs. Nothing in heaven or upon earth can serve
as a control on them. What ought to be the heads, the hearts, the dispositions
that are qualified or that dare, not only to make laws under a fixed constitution,
but at one heat to strike out a totally new constitution for a great kingdom,
and in every part of it, from the monarch on the throne to the vestry of a parish?
But — "fools rush in where angels fear to tread". In such a
state of unbounded power for undefined and undefinable purposes, the evil of
a moral and almost physical inaptitude of the man to the function must be the
greatest we can conceive to happen in the management of human affairs.
Having considered the composition of the Third Estate as it stood in its original
frame, I took a view of the representatives of the clergy. There, too, it appeared
that full as little regard was had to the general security of property or to
the aptitude of the deputies for the public purposes, in the principles of their
election. That election was so contrived as to send a very large proportion
of mere country curates to the great and arduous work of new-modeling a state:
men who never had seen the state so much as in a picture — men who knew
nothing of the world beyond the bounds of an obscure village; who, immersed
in hopeless poverty, could regard all property, whether secular or ecclesiastical,
with no other eye than that of envy; among whom must be many who, for the smallest
hope of the meanest dividend in plunder, would readily join in any attempts
upon a body of wealth in which they could hardly look to have any share except
in a general scramble. Instead of balancing the power of the active chicaners
in the other assembly, these curates must necessarily become the active coadjutors,
or at best the passive instruments, of those by whom they had been habitually
guided in their petty village concerns. They, too, could hardly be the most
conscientious of their kind who, presuming upon their incompetent understanding,
could intrigue for a trust which led them from their natural relation to their
flocks and their natural spheres of action to undertake the regeneration of
kingdoms. This preponderating weight, being added to the force of the body of
chicane in the Tiers Etat, completed that momentum of ignorance, rashness, presumption,
and lust of plunder, which nothing has been able to resist.
To observing men it must have appeared from the beginning that the majority
of the Third Estate, in conjunction with such a deputation from the clergy as
I have described, whilst it pursued the destruction of the nobility, would inevitably
become subservient to the worst designs of individuals in that class. In the
spoil and humiliation of their own order these individuals would possess a sure
fund for the pay of their new followers. To squander away the objects which
made the happiness of their fellows would be to them no sacrifice at all. Turbulent,
discontented men of quality, in proportion as they are puffed up with personal
pride and arrogance, generally despise their own order. One of the first symptoms
they discover of a selfish and mischievous ambition is a profligate disregard
of a dignity which they partake with others. To be attached to the subdivision,
to love the little platoon we belong to in society, is the first principle (the
germ as it were) of public affections. It is the first link in the series by
which we proceed toward a love to our country and to mankind. The interest of
that portion of social arrangement is a trust in the hands of all those who
compose it; and as none but bad men would justify it in abuse, none but traitors
would barter it away for their own personal advantage.
There were in the time of our civil troubles in England (I do not know whether
you have any such in your assembly in France) several persons, like the then
Earl of Holland, who by themselves or their families had brought an odium on
the throne by the prodigal dispensation of its bounties toward them, who afterwards
joined in the rebellions arising from the discontents of which they were themselves
the cause; men who helped to subvert that throne to which they owed, some of
them, their existence, others all that power which they employed to ruin their
benefactor. If any bounds are set to the rapacious demands of that sort of people,
or that others are permitted to partake in the objects they would engross, revenge
and envy soon fill up the craving void that is left in their avarice. Confounded
by the complication of distempered passions, their reason is disturbed; their
views become vast and perplexed; to others inexplicable, to themselves uncertain.
They find, on all sides, bounds to their unprincipled ambition in any fixed
order of things. Both in the fog and haze of confusion all is enlarged and appears
without any limit.
When men of rank sacrifice all ideas of dignity to an ambition without a distinct
object and work with low instruments and for low ends, the whole composition
becomes low and base. Does not something like this now appear in France? Does
it not produce something ignoble and inglorious — a kind of meanness in
all the prevalent policy, a tendency in all that is done to lower along with
individuals all the dignity and importance of the state? Other revolutions have
been conducted by persons who, whilst they attempted or affected changes in
the commonwealth, sanctified their ambition by advancing the dignity of the
people whose peace they troubled. They had long views. They aimed at the rule,
not at the destruction, of their country. They were men of great civil and great
military talents, and if the terror, the ornament of their age. They were not
like Jew brokers, contending with each other who could best remedy with fraudulent
circulation and depreciated paper the wretchedness and ruin brought on their
country by their degenerate councils. The compliment made to one of the great
bad men of the old stamp (Cromwell) by his kinsman, a favorite poet of that
time, shows what it was he proposed, and what indeed to a great degree he accomplished,
in the success of his ambition:
Still as you rise, the state exalted too,
Finds no distemper whilst 'tis changed by you;
Changed like the world's great scene, when without noise
The rising sun night's vulgar lights destroys.
These disturbers were not so much like men usurping power as asserting their
natural place in society. Their rising was to illuminate and beautify the world.
Their conquest over their competitors was by outshining them. The hand that,
like a destroying angel, smote the country communicated to it the force and
energy under which it suffered. I do not say (God forbid), I do not say that
the virtues of such men were to be taken as a balance to their crimes; but they
were some corrective to their effects. Such was, as I said, our Cromwell. Such
were your whole race of Guises, Condes, and Colignis. Such the Richelieus, who
in more quiet times acted in the spirit of a civil war. Such, as better men,
and in a less dubious cause, were your Henry the Fourth and your Sully, though
nursed in civil confusions and not wholly without some of their taint. It is
a thing to be wondered at, to see how very soon France, when she had a moment
to respire, recovered and emerged from the longest and most dreadful civil war
that ever was known in any nation. Why? Because among all their massacres they
had not slain the mind in their country. A conscious dignity, a noble pride,
a generous sense of glory and emulation was not extinguished. On the contrary,
it was kindled and inflamed. The organs also of the state, however shattered,
existed. All the prizes of honor and virtue, all the rewards, all the distinctions
remained. But your present confusion, like a palsy, has attacked the fountain
of life itself. Every person in your country, in a situation to be actuated
by a principle of honor, is disgraced and degraded, and can entertain no sensation
of life except in a mortified and humiliated indignation. But this generation
will quickly pass away. The next generation of the nobility will resemble the
artificers and clowns, and money-jobbers usurers, and Jews, who will be always
their fellows, sometimes their masters.
BELIEVE ME, SIR, those who attempt to level, never equalize. In all societies,
consisting of various descriptions of citizens, some description must be uppermost.
The levelers, therefore, only change and pervert the natural order of things;
they load the edifice of society by setting up in the air what the solidity
of the structure requires to be on the ground. The association of tailors and
carpenters, of which the republic (of Paris, for instance) is composed, cannot
be equal to the situation into which by the worst of usurpations — an
usurpation on the prerogatives of nature — you attempt to force them.
The Chancellor of France, at the opening of the states, said, in a tone of oratorical
flourish, that all occupations were honorable. If he meant only that no honest
employment was disgraceful, he would not have gone beyond the truth. But in
asserting that anything is honorable, we imply some distinction in its favor.
The occupation of a hairdresser or of a working tallow-chandler cannot be a
matter of honor to any person — to say nothing of a number of other more
servile employments. Such descriptions of men ought not to suffer oppression
from the state; but the state suffers oppression if such as they, either individually
or collectively, are permitted to rule. In this you think you are combating
prejudice, but you are at war with nature.[10]
I do not determine whether this book be canonical, as the Gallican church (till
lately) has considered it, or apocryphal, as here it is taken. I am sure it
contains a great deal of sense and truth.
I do not, my dear Sir, conceive you to be of that sophistical, captious spirit,
or of that uncandid dulness, as to require, for every general observation or
sentiment, an explicit detail of the correctives and exceptions which reason
will presume to be included in all the general propositions which come from
reasonable men. You do not imagine that I wish to confine power, authority,
and distinction to blood and names and titles. No, Sir. There is no qualification
for government but virtue and wisdom, actual or presumptive. Wherever they are
actually found, they have, in whatever state, condition, profession, or trade,
the passport of Heaven to human place and honor. Woe to the country which would
madly and impiously reject the service of the talents and virtues, civil, military,
or religious, that are given to grace and to serve it, and would condemn to
obscurity everything formed to diffuse luster and glory around a state. Woe
to that country, too, that, passing into the opposite extreme, considers a low
education, a mean contracted view of things, a sordid, mercenary occupation
as a preferable title to command. Everything ought to be open, but not indifferently,
to every man. No rotation; no appointment by lot; no mode of election operating
in the spirit of sortition or rotation can be generally good in a government
conversant in extensive objects. Because they have no tendency, direct or indirect,
to select the man with a view to the duty or to accommodate the one to the other.
I do not hesitate to say that the road to eminence and power, from obscure condition,
ought not to be made too easy, nor a thing too much of course. If rare merit
be the rarest of all rare things, it ought to pass through some sort of probation.
The temple of honor ought to be seated on an eminence. If it be opened through
virtue, let it be remembered, too, that virtue is never tried but by some difficulty
and some struggle.
Nothing is a due and adequate representation of a state that does not represent
its ability as well as its property. But as ability is a vigorous and active
principle, and as property is sluggish, inert, and timid, it never can be safe
from the invasion of ability unless it be, out of all proportion, predominant
in the representation. It must be represented, too, in great masses of accumulation,
or it is not rightly protected. The characteristic essence of property, formed
out of the combined principles of its acquisition and conservation, is to be
unequal. The great masses, therefore, which excite envy and tempt rapacity must
be put out of the possibility of danger. Then they form a natural rampart about
the lesser properties in all their gradations. The same quantity of property,
which is by the natural course of things divided among many, has not the same
operation. Its defensive power is weakened as it is diffused. In this diffusion
each man's portion is less than what, in the eagerness of his desires, he may
flatter himself to obtain by dissipating the accumulations of others. The plunder
of the few would indeed give but a share inconceivably small in the distribution
to the many. But the many are not capable of making this calculation; and those
who lead them to rapine never intend this distribution.
The power of perpetuating our property in our families is one of the most valuable
and interesting circumstances belonging to it, and that which tends the most
to the perpetuation of society itself. It makes our weakness subservient to
our virtue, it grafts benevolence even upon avarice. The possessors of family
wealth, and of the distinction which attends hereditary possession (as most
concerned in it), are the natural securities for this transmission. With us
the House of Peers is formed upon this principle. It is wholly composed of hereditary
property and hereditary distinction, and made, therefore, the third of the legislature
and, in the last event, the sole judge of all property in all its subdivisions.
The House of Commons, too, though not necessarily, yet in fact, is always so
composed, in the far greater part. Let those large proprietors be what they
will — and they have their chance of being amongst the best — they
are, at the very worst, the ballast in the vessel of the commonwealth. For though
hereditary wealth and the rank which goes with it are too much idolized by creeping
sycophants and the blind, abject admirers of power, they are too rashly slighted
in shallow speculations of the petulant, assuming, short-sighted coxcombs of
philosophy. Some decent, regulated preeminence, some preference (not exclusive
appropriation) given to birth is neither unnatural, nor unjust, nor impolitic.
IT is said that twenty-four millions ought to prevail over two hundred thousand.
True; if the constitution of a kingdom be a problem of arithmetic. This sort
of discourse does well enough with the lamp-post for its second; to men who
may reason calmly, it is ridiculous. The will of the many and their interest
must very often differ, and great will be the difference when they make an evil
choice. A government of five hundred country attornies and obscure curates is
not good for twenty-four millions of men, though it were chosen by eight and
forty millions, nor is it the better for being guided by a dozen of persons
of quality who have betrayed their trust in order to obtain that power. At present,
you seem in everything to have strayed out of the high road of nature. The property
of France does not govern it. Of course, property is destroyed and rational
liberty has no existence. All you have got for the present is a paper circulation
and a stock-jobbing constitution; and as to the future, do you seriously think
that the territory of France, upon the republican system of eighty-three independent
municipalities (to say nothing of the parts that compose them), can ever be
governed as one body or can ever be set in motion by the impulse of one mind?
When the National Assembly has completed its work, it will have accomplished
its ruin. These commonwealths will not long bear a state of subjection to the
republic of Paris. They will not bear that this body should monopolize the captivity
of the king and the dominion over the assembly calling itself national. Each
will keep its own portion of the spoil of the church to itself, and it will
not suffer either that spoil, or the more just fruits of their industry, or
the natural produce of their soil to be sent to swell the insolence or pamper
the luxury of the mechanics of Paris. In this they will see none of the equality,
under the pretense of which they have been tempted to throw off their allegiance
to their sovereign as well as the ancient constitution of their country. There
can be no capital city in such a constitution as they have lately made. They
have forgot that, when they framed democratic governments, they had virtually
dismembered their country. The person whom they persevere in calling king has
not power left to him by the hundredth part sufficient to hold together this
collection of republics. The republic of Paris will endeavor, indeed, to complete
the debauchery of the army, and illegally to perpetuate the assembly, without
resort to its constituents, as the means of continuing its despotism. It will
make efforts, by becoming the heart of a boundless paper circulation, to draw
everything to itself; but in vain. All this policy in the end will appear as
feeble as it is now violent.
IF this be your actual situation, compared to the situation to which you were
called, as it were, by the voice of God and man, I cannot find it in my heart
to congratulate you on the choice you have made or the success which has attended
your endeavors. I can as little recommend to any other nation a conduct grounded
on such principles, and productive of such effects. That I must leave to those
who can see farther into your affairs than I am able to do, and who best know
how far your actions are favorable to their designs. The gentlemen of the Revolution
Society, who were so early in their congratulations, appear to be strongly of
opinion that there is some scheme of politics relative to this country in which
your proceedings may, in some way, be useful. For your Dr. Price, who seems
to have speculated himself into no small degree of fervor upon this subject,
addresses his auditory in the following very remarkable words: "I cannot
conclude without recalling particularly to your recollection a consideration
which I have more than once alluded to, and which probably your thoughts have
been all along anticipating; a consideration with which my mind is impressed
more than I can express. I mean the consideration of the favourableness of the
present times to all exertions in the cause of liberty."
It is plain that the mind of this political preacher was at the time big with
some extraordinary design; and it is very probable that the thoughts of his
audience, who understood him better than I do, did all along run before him
in his reflection and in the whole train of consequences to which it led.
Before I read that sermon, I really thought I had lived in a free country; and
it was an error I cherished, because it gave me a greater liking to the country
I lived in. I was, indeed, aware that a jealous, ever-waking vigilance to guard
the treasure of our liberty, not only from invasion, but from decay and corruption,
was our best wisdom and our first duty. However, I considered that treasure
rather as a possession to be secured than as a prize to be contended for. I
did not discern how the present time came to be so very favorable to all exertions
in the cause of freedom. The present time differs from any other only by the
circumstance of what is doing in France. If the example of that nation is to
have an influence on this, I can easily conceive why some of their proceedings
which have an unpleasant aspect and are not quite reconcilable to humanity,
generosity, good faith, and justice are palliated with so much milky good-nature
toward the actors, and borne with so much heroic fortitude toward the sufferers.
It is certainly not prudent to discredit the authority of an example we mean
to follow. But allowing this, we are led to a very natural question: What is
that cause of liberty, and what are those exertions in its favor to which the
example of France is so singularly auspicious? Is our monarchy to be annihilated,
with all the laws, all the tribunals, and all the ancient corporations of the
kingdom? Is every landmark of the country to be done away in favor of a geometrical
and arithmetical constitution? Is the House of Lords to be voted useless? Is
episcopacy to be abolished? Are the church lands to be sold to Jews and jobbers
or given to bribe new-invented municipal republics into a participation in sacrilege?
Are all the taxes to be voted grievances, and the revenue reduced to a patriotic
contribution or patriotic presents? Are silver shoebuckles to be substituted
in the place of the land tax and the malt tax for the support of the naval strength
of this kingdom? Are all orders, ranks, and distinctions to be confounded, that
out of universal anarchy, joined to national bankruptcy, three or four thousand
democracies should be formed into eighty-three, and that they may all, by some
sort of unknown attractive power, be organized into one?
For this great end, is the army to be seduced from its discipline and its fidelity,
first, by every kind of debauchery and, then, by the terrible precedent of a
donative in the increase of pay? Are the curates to be seduced from their bishops
by holding out to them the delusive hope of a dole out of the spoils of their
own order? Are the citizens of London to be drawn from their allegiance by feeding
them at the expense of their fellow subjects? Is a compulsory paper currency
to be substituted in the place of the legal coin of this kingdom? Is what remains
of the plundered stock of public revenue to be employed in the wild project
of maintaining two armies to watch over and to fight with each other? If these
are the ends and means of the Revolution Society, I admit that they are well
assorted; and France may furnish them for both with precedents in point.
I see that your example is held out to shame us. I know that we are supposed
a dull, sluggish race, rendered passive by finding our situation tolerable,
and prevented by a mediocrity of freedom from ever attaining to its full perfection.
Your leaders in France began by affecting to admire, almost to adore, the British
constitution; but as they advanced, they came to look upon it with a sovereign
contempt. The friends of your National Assembly amongst us have full as mean
an opinion of what was formerly thought the glory of their country. The Revolution
Society has discovered that the English nation is not free. They are convinced
that the inequality in our representation is a "defect in our constitution
so gross and palpable as to make it excellent chiefly in form and theory".[11]
That a representation in the legislature of a kingdom is not only the basis
of all constitutional liberty in it, but of "all legitimate government;
that without it a government is nothing but an usurpation"; — that
"when the representation is partial, the kingdom possesses liberty only
partially; and if extremely partial, it gives only a semblance; and if not only
extremely partial, but corruptly chosen, it becomes a nuisance". Dr. Price
considers this inadequacy of representation as our fundamental grievance; and
though, as to the corruption of this semblance of representation, he hopes it
is not yet arrived to its full perfection of depravity, he fears that "nothing
will be done towards gaining for us this essential blessing, until some great
abuse of power again provokes our resentment, or some great calamity again alarms
our fears, or perhaps till the acquisition of a pure and equal representation
by other countries, whilst we are mocked with the shadow, kindles our shame."
To this he subjoins a note in these words. "A representation chosen chiefly
by the treasury, and a few thousands of the dregs of the people, who are generally
paid for their votes".
You will smile here at the consistency of those democratists who, when they
are not on their guard, treat the humbler part of the community with the greatest
contempt, whilst, at the same time, they pretend to make them the depositories
of all power. It would require a long discourse to point out to you the many
fallacies that lurk in the generality and equivocal nature of the terms "inadequate
representation". I shall only say here, in justice to that old-fashioned
constitution under which we have long prospered, that our representation has
been found perfectly adequate to all the purposes for which a representation
of the people can be desired or devised. I defy the enemies of our constitution
to show the contrary. To detail the particulars in which it is found so well
to promote its ends would demand a treatise on our practical constitution. I
state here the doctrine of the Revolutionists only that you and others may see
what an opinion these gentlemen entertain of the constitution of their country,
and why they seem to think that some great abuse of power or some great calamity,
as giving a chance for the blessing of a constitution according to their ideas,
would be much palliated to their feelings; you see why they are so much enamored
of your fair and equal representation, which being once obtained, the same effects
might follow. You see they consider our House of Commons as only "a semblance",
"a form", "a theory", "a shadow", "a mockery",
perhaps "a nuisance".
These gentlemen value themselves on being systematic, and not without reason.
They must therefore look on this gross and palpable defect of representation,
this fundamental grievance (so they call it) as a thing not only vicious in
itself, but as rendering our whole government absolutely illegitimate, and not
at all better than a downright usurpation. Another revolution, to get rid of
this illegitimate and usurped government, would of course be perfectly justifiable,
if not absolutely necessary. Indeed, their principle, if you observe it with
any attention, goes much further than to an alteration in the election of the
House of Commons; for, if popular representation, or choice, is necessary to
the legitimacy of all government, the House of Lords is, at one stroke, bastardized
and corrupted in blood. That House is no representative of the people at all,
even in "semblance or in form". The case of the crown is altogether
as bad. In vain the crown may endeavor to screen itself against these gentlemen
by the authority of the establishment made on the Revolution. The Revolution
which is resorted to for a title, on their system, wants a title itself. The
Revolution is built, according to their theory, upon a basis not more solid
than our present formalities, as it was made by a House of Lords, not representing
any one but themselves, and by a House of Commons exactly such as the present,
that is, as they term it, by a mere "shadow and mockery" of representation.
Something they must destroy, or they seem to themselves to exist for no purpose.
One set is for destroying the civil power through the ecclesiastical; another,
for demolishing the ecclesiastic through the civil. They are aware that the
worst consequences might happen to the public in accomplishing this double ruin
of church and state, but they are so heated with their theories that they give
more than hints that this ruin, with all the mischiefs that must lead to it
and attend it, and which to themselves appear quite certain, would not be unacceptable
to them or very remote from their wishes. A man amongst them of great authority
and certainly of great talents, speaking of a supposed alliance between church
and state, says, "perhaps we must wait for the fall of the civil powers
before this most unnatural alliance be broken. Calamitous no doubt will that
time be. But what convulsion in the political world ought to be a subject of
lamentation if it be attended with so desirable an effect?" You see with
what a steady eye these gentlemen are prepared to view the greatest calamities
which can befall their country.
IT is no wonder, therefore, that with these ideas of everything in their constitution
and government at home, either in church or state, as illegitimate and usurped,
or at best as a vain mockery, they look abroad with an eager and passionate
enthusiasm. Whilst they are possessed by these notions, it is vain to talk to
them of the practice of their ancestors, the fundamental laws of their country,
the fixed form of a constitution whose merits are confirmed by the solid test
of long experience and an increasing public strength and national prosperity.
They despise experience as the wisdom of unlettered men; and as for the rest,
they have wrought underground a mine that will blow up, at one grand explosion,
all examples of antiquity, all precedents, charters, and acts of parliament.
They have "the rights of men". Against these there can be no prescription,
against these no agreement is binding; these admit no temperament and no compromise;
anything withheld from their full demand is so much of fraud and injustice.
Against these their rights of men let no government look for security in the
length of its continuance, or in the justice and lenity of its administration.
The objections of these speculatists, if its forms do not quadrate with their
theories, are as valid against such an old and beneficent government as against
the most violent tyranny or the greenest usurpation. They are always at issue
with governments, not on a question of abuse, but a question of competency and
a question of title. I have nothing to say to the clumsy subtilty of their political
metaphysics. Let them be their amusement in the schools. — "Illa
se jactet in aula Aeolus, et clauso ventorum carcere regnet". — But
let them not break prison to burst like a Levanter to sweep the earth with their
hurricane and to break up the fountains of the great deep to overwhelm us.
Far am I from denying in theory, full as far is my heart from withholding in
practice (if I were of power to give or to withhold) the real rights of men.
In denying their false claims of right, I do not mean to injure those which
are real, and are such as their pretended rights would totally destroy. If civil
society be made for the advantage of man, all the advantages for which it is
made become his right. It is an institution of beneficence; and law itself is
only beneficence acting by a rule. Men have a right to live by that rule; they
have a right to do justice, as between their fellows, whether their fellows
are in public function or in ordinary occupation. They have a right to the fruits
of their industry and to the means of making their industry fruitful. They have
a right to the acquisitions of their parents, to the nourishment and improvement
of their offspring, to instruction in life, and to consolation in death. Whatever
each man can separately do, without trespassing upon others, he has a right
to do for himself; and he has a right to a fair portion of all which society,
with all its combinations of skill and force, can do in his favor. In this partnership
all men have equal rights, but not to equal things. He that has but five shillings
in the partnership has as good a right to it as he that has five hundred pounds
has to his larger proportion. But he has not a right to an equal dividend in
the product of the joint stock; and as to the share of power, authority, and
direction which each individual ought to have in the management of the state,
that I must deny to be amongst the direct original rights of man in civil society;
for I have in my contemplation the civil social man, and no other. It is a thing
to be settled by convention.
If civil society be the offspring of convention, that convention must be its
law. That convention must limit and modify all the descriptions of constitution
which are formed under it. Every sort of legislative, judicial, or executory
power are its creatures. They can have no being in any other state of things;
and how can any man claim under the conventions of civil society rights which
do not so much as suppose its existence — rights which are absolutely
repugnant to it? One of the first motives to civil society, and which becomes
one of its fundamental rules, is that no man should be judge in his own cause.
By this each person has at once divested himself of the first fundamental right
of uncovenanted man, that is, to judge for himself and to assert his own cause.
He abdicates all right to be his own governor. He inclusively, in a great measure,
abandons the right of self-defense, the first law of nature. Men cannot enjoy
the rights of an uncivil and of a civil state together. That he may obtain justice,
he gives up his right of determining what it is in points the most essential
to him. That he may secure some liberty, he makes a surrender in trust of the
whole of it.
Government is not made in virtue of natural rights, which may and do exist in
total independence of it, and exist in much greater clearness and in a much
greater degree of abstract perfection; but their abstract perfection is their
practical defect. By having a right to everything they want everything. Government
is a contrivance of human wisdom to provide for human wants. Men have a right
that these wants should be provided for by this wisdom. Among these wants is
to be reckoned the want, out of civil society, of a sufficient restraint upon
their passions. Society requires not only that the passions of individuals should
be subjected, but that even in the mass and body, as well as in the individuals,
the inclinations of men should frequently be thwarted, their will controlled,
and their passions brought into subjection. This can only be done by a power
out of themselves, and not, in the exercise of its function, subject to that
will and to those passions which it is its office to bridle and subdue. In this
sense the restraints on men, as well as their liberties, are to be reckoned
among their rights. But as the liberties and the restrictions vary with times
and circumstances and admit to infinite modifications, they cannot be settled
upon any abstract rule; and nothing is so foolish as to discuss them upon that
principle.
The moment you abate anything from the full rights of men, each to govern himself,
and suffer any artificial, positive limitation upon those rights, from that
moment the whole organization of government becomes a consideration of convenience.
This it is which makes the constitution of a state and the due distribution
of its powers a matter of the most delicate and complicated skill. It requires
a deep knowledge of human nature and human necessities, and of the things which
facilitate or obstruct the various ends which are to be pursued by the mechanism
of civil institutions. The state is to have recruits to its strength, and remedies
to its distempers. What is the use of discussing a man's abstract right to food
or medicine? The question is upon the method of procuring and administering
them. In that deliberation I shall always advise to call in the aid of the farmer
and the physician rather than the professor of metaphysics.
The science of constructing a commonwealth, or renovating it, or reforming it,
is, like every other experimental science, not to be taught a priori. Nor is
it a short experience that can instruct us in that practical science, because
the real effects of moral causes are not always immediate; but that which in
the first instance is prejudicial may be excellent in its remoter operation,
and its excellence may arise even from the ill effects it produces in the beginning.
The reverse also happens: and very plausible schemes, with very pleasing commencements,
have often shameful and lamentable conclusions. In states there are often some
obscure and almost latent causes, things which appear at first view of little
moment, on which a very great part of its prosperity or adversity may most essentially
depend. The science of government being therefore so practical in itself and
intended for such practical purposes — a matter which requires experience,
and even more experience than any person can gain in his whole life, however
sagacious and observing he may be — it is with infinite caution that any
man ought to venture upon pulling down an edifice which has answered in any
tolerable degree for ages the common purposes of society, or on building it
up again without having models and patterns of approved utility before his eyes.
These metaphysic rights entering into common life, like rays of light which
pierce into a dense medium, are by the laws of nature refracted from their straight
line. Indeed, in the gross and complicated mass of human passions and concerns
the primitive rights of men undergo such a variety of refractions and reflections
that it becomes absurd to talk of them as if they continued in the simplicity
of their original direction. The nature of man is intricate; the objects of
society are of the greatest possible complexity; and, therefore, no simple disposition
or direction of power can be suitable either to man's nature or to the quality
of his affairs. When I hear the simplicity of contrivance aimed at and boasted
of in any new political constitutions, I am at no loss to decide that the artificers
are grossly ignorant of their trade or totally negligent of their duty. The
simple governments are fundamentally defective, to say no worse of them. If
you were to contemplate society in but one point of view, all these simple modes
of polity are infinitely captivating. In effect each would answer its single
end much more perfectly than the more complex is able to attain all its complex
purposes. But it is better that the whole should be imperfectly and anomalously
answered than that, while some parts are provided for with great exactness,
others might be totally neglected or perhaps materially injured by the over-care
of a favorite member.
The pretended rights of these theorists are all extremes; and in proportion
as they are metaphysically true, they are morally and politically false. The
rights of men are in a sort of middle, incapable of definition, but not impossible
to be discerned. The rights of men in governments are their advantages; and
these are often in balances between differences of good, in compromises sometimes
between good and evil, and sometimes between evil and evil. Political reason
is a computing principle: adding, subtracting, multiplying, and dividing, morally
and not metaphysically or mathematically, true moral denominations.
By these theorists the right of the people is almost always sophistically confounded
with their power. The body of the community, whenever it can come to act, can
meet with no effectual resistance; but till power and right are the same, the
whole body of them has no right inconsistent with virtue, and the first of all
virtues, prudence. Men have no right to what is not reasonable and to what is
not for their benefit; for though a pleasant writer said, liceat perire poetis,
when one of them, in cold blood, is said to have leaped into the flames of a
volcanic revolution, ardentem frigidus Aetnam insiluit, I consider such a frolic
rather as an unjustifiable poetic license than as one of the franchises of Parnassus;
and whether he was a poet, or divine, or politician that chose to exercise this
kind of right, I think that more wise, because more charitable, thoughts would
urge me rather to save the man than to preserve his brazen slippers as the monuments
of his folly.
The kind of anniversary sermons to which a great part of what I write refers,
if men are not shamed out of their present course in commemorating the fact,
will cheat many out of the principles, and deprive them of the benefits, of
the revolution they commemorate. I confess to you, Sir, I never liked this continual
talk of resistance and revolution, or the practice of making the extreme medicine
of the constitution its daily bread. It renders the habit of society dangerously
valetudinary; it is taking periodical doses of mercury sublimate and swallowing
down repeated provocatives of cantharides to our love of liberty.
This distemper of remedy, grown habitual, relaxes and wears out, by a vulgar
and prostituted use, the spring of that spirit which is to be exerted on great
occasions. It was in the most patient period of Roman servitude that themes
of tyrannicide made the ordinary exercise of boys at school — cum perimit
saevos classis numerosa tyrannos. In the ordinary state of things, it produces
in a country like ours the worst effects, even on the cause of that liberty
which it abuses with the dissoluteness of an extravagant speculation. Almost
all the high-bred republicans of my time have, after a short space, become the
most decided, thorough-paced courtiers; they soon left the business of a tedious,
moderate, but practical resistance to those of us whom, in the pride and intoxication
of their theories, they have slighted as not much better than Tories. Hypocrisy,
of course, delights in the most sublime speculations, for, never intending to
go beyond speculation, it costs nothing to have it magnificent. But even in
cases where rather levity than fraud was to be suspected in these ranting speculations,
the issue has been much the same. These professors, finding their extreme principles
not applicable to cases which call only for a qualified or, as I may say, civil
and legal resistance, in such cases employ no resistance at all. It is with
them a war or a revolution, or it is nothing. Finding their schemes of politics
not adapted to the state of the world in which they live, they often come to
think lightly of all public principle, and are ready, on their part, to abandon
for a very trivial interest what they find of very trivial value. Some, indeed,
are of more steady and persevering natures, but these are eager politicians
out of parliament who have little to tempt them to abandon their favorite projects.
They have some change in the church or state, or both, constantly in their view.
When that is the case, they are always bad citizens and perfectly unsure connections.
For, considering their speculative designs as of infinite value, and the actual
arrangement of the state as of no estimation, they are at best indifferent about
it. They see no merit in the good, and no fault in the vicious, management of
public affairs; they rather rejoice in the latter, as more propitious to revolution.
They see no merit or demerit in any man, or any action, or any political principle
any further than as they may forward or retard their design of change; they
therefore take up, one day, the most violent and stretched prerogative, and
another time the wildest democratic ideas of freedom, and pass from one to the
other without any sort of regard to cause, to person, or to party.
IN FRANCE, you are now in the crisis of a revolution and in the transit from
one form of government to another — you cannot see that character of men
exactly in the same situation in which we see it in this country. With us it
is militant; with you it is triumphant; and you know how it can act when its
power is commensurate to its will. I would not be supposed to confine those
observations to any description of men or to comprehend all men of any description
within them — No! far from it. I am as incapable of that injustice as
I am of keeping terms with those who profess principles of extremities and who,
under the name of religion, teach little else than wild and dangerous politics.
The worst of these politics of revolution is this: they temper and harden the
breast in order to prepare it for the desperate strokes which are sometimes
used in extreme occasions. But as these occasions may never arrive, the mind
receives a gratuitous taint; and the moral sentiments suffer not a little when
no political purpose is served by the depravation. This sort of people are so
taken up with their theories about the rights of man that they have totally
forgotten his nature. Without opening one new avenue to the understanding, they
have succeeded in stopping up those that lead to the heart. They have perverted
in themselves, and in those that attend to them, all the well-placed sympathies
of the human breast.
This famous sermon of the Old Jewry breathes nothing but this spirit through
all the political part. Plots, massacres, assassinations seem to some people
a trivial price for obtaining a revolution. Cheap, bloodless reformation, a
guiltless liberty appear flat and vapid to their taste. There must be a great
change of scene; there must be a magnificent stage effect; there must be a grand
spectacle to rouse the imagination grown torpid with the lazy enjoyment of sixty
years' security and the still unanimating repose of public prosperity. The preacher
found them all in the French Revolution. This inspires a juvenile warmth through
his whole frame. His enthusiasm kindles as he advances; and when he arrives
at his peroration it is in a full blaze. Then viewing, from the Pisgah of his
pulpit, the free, moral, happy, flourishing and glorious state of France as
in a bird's-eye landscape of a promised land, he breaks out into the following
rapture: What an eventful period is this! I am thankful that I have lived to
it; I could almost say, Lord, now lettest thou thy servant depart in peace,
for mine eyes have seen thy salvation. — I have lived to see a diffusion
of knowledge, which has undermined superstition and error. — I have lived
to see the rights of men better understood than ever; and nations panting for
liberty which seemed to have lost the idea of it. — I have lived to see
thirty millions of people, indignant and resolute, spurning at slavery, and
demanding liberty with an irresistible voice. Their king led in triumph and
an arbitrary monarch surrendering himself to his subjects. [12]
Before I proceed further, I have to remark that Dr. Price seems rather to overvalue
the great acquisitions of light which he has obtained and diffused in this age.
The last century appears to me to have been quite as much enlightened. It had,
though in a different place, a triumph as memorable as that of Dr. Price; and
some of the great preachers of that period partook of it as eagerly as he has
done in the triumph of France. On the trial of the Rev. Hugh Peters for high
treason, it was deposed that, when King Charles was brought to London for his
trial, the Apostle of Liberty in that day conducted the triumph. "I saw",
says the witness, "his Majesty in the coach with six horses, and Peters
riding before the king, triumphing". Dr. Price, when he talks as if he
had made a discovery, only follows a precedent, for after the commencement of
the king's trial this precursor, the same Dr. Peters, concluding a long prayer
at the Royal Chapel at Whitehall (he had very triumphantly chosen his place),
said, "I have prayed and preached these twenty years; and now I may say
with old Simeon, Lord, now lettest thou thy servant depart in peace, for mine
eyes have seen thy salvation". [13] Peters had not the fruits of his prayer,
for he neither departed so soon as he wished, nor in peace. He became (what
I heartily hope none of his followers may be in this country) himself a sacrifice
to the triumph which he led as pontiff.
They dealt at the Restoration, perhaps, too hardly with this poor good man.
But we owe it to his memory and his sufferings that he had as much illumination
and as much zeal, and had as effectually undermined all the superstition and
error which might impede the great business he was engaged in, as any who follow
and repeat after him in this age, which would assume to itself an exclusive
title to the knowledge of the rights of men and all the glorious consequences
of that knowledge.
After this sally of the preacher of the Old Jewry, which differs only in place
and time, but agrees perfectly with the spirit and letter of the rapture of
1648, the Revolution Society, the fabricators of governments, the heroic band
of cashierers of monarchs, electors of sovereigns, and leaders of kings in triumph,
strutting with a proud consciousness of the diffusion of knowledge of which
every member had obtained so large a share in the donative, were in haste to
make a generous diffusion of the knowledge they had thus gratuitously received.
To make this bountiful communication, they adjourned from the church in the
Old Jewry to the London Tavern, where the same Dr. Price, in whom the fumes
of his oracular tripod were not entirely evaporated, moved and carried the resolution
or address of congratulation transmitted by Lord Stanhope to the National Assembly
of France.
I find a preacher of the gospel profaning the beautiful and prophetic ejaculation,
commonly called "nunc dimittis", made on the first presentation of
our Saviour in the Temple, and applying it with an inhuman and unnatural rapture
to the most horrid, atrocious, and afflicting spectacle that perhaps ever was
exhibited to the pity and indignation of mankind. This "leading in triumph",
a thing in its best form unmanly and irreligious, which fills our preacher with
such unhallowed transports, must shock, I believe, the moral taste of every
well-born mind. Several English were the stupefied and indignant spectators
of that triumph. It was (unless we have been strangely deceived) a spectacle
more resembling a procession of American savages, entering into Onondaga after
some of their murders called victories and leading into hovels hung round with
scalps their captives, overpowered with the scoffs and buffets of women as ferocious
as themselves, much more than it resembled the triumphal pomp of a civilized
martial nation — if a civilized nation, or any men who had a sense of
generosity, were capable of a personal triumph over the fallen and afflicted.
THIS, MY DEAR SIR, was not the triumph of France. I must believe that, as a
nation, it overwhelmed you with shame and horror. I must believe that the National
Assembly find themselves in a state of the greatest humiliation in not being
able to punish the authors of this triumph or the actors in it, and that they
are in a situation in which any inquiry they may make upon the subject must
be destitute even of the appearance of liberty or impartiality. The apology
of that assembly is found in their situation; but when we approve what they
must bear, it is in us the degenerate choice of a vitiated mind.
With a compelled appearance of deliberation, they vote under the dominion of
a stern necessity. They sit in the heart, as it were, of a foreign republic:
they have their residence in a city whose constitution has emanated neither
from the charter of their king nor from their legislative power. There they
are surrounded by an army not raised either by the authority of their crown
or by their command, and which, if they should order to dissolve itself, would
instantly dissolve them. There they sit, after a gang of assassins had driven
away some hundreds of the members, whilst those who held the same moderate principles,
with more patience or better hope, continued every day exposed to outrageous
insults and murderous threats. There a majority, sometimes real, sometimes pretended,
captive itself, compels a captive king to issue as royal edicts, at third hand,
the polluted nonsense of their most licentious and giddy coffeehouses. It is
notorious that all their measures are decided before they are debated. It is
beyond doubt that, under the terror of the bayonet and the lamp-post and the
torch to their houses, they are obliged to adopt all the crude and desperate
measures suggested by clubs composed of a monstrous medley of all conditions,
tongues, and nations. Among these are found persons, in comparison of whom Catiline
would be thought scrupulous and Cethegus a man of sobriety and moderation. Nor
is it in these clubs alone that the public measures are deformed into monsters.
They undergo a previous distortion in academies, intended as so many seminaries
for these clubs, which are set up in all the places of public resort. In these
meetings of all sorts every counsel, in proportion as it is daring and violent
and perfidious, is taken for the mark of superior genius. Humanity and compassion
are ridiculed as the fruits of superstition and ignorance. Tenderness to individuals
is considered as treason to the public. Liberty is always to be estimated perfect,
as property is rendered insecure. Amidst assassination, massacre, and confiscation,
perpetrated or meditated, they are forming plans for the good order of future
society. Embracing in their arms the carcasses of base criminals and promoting
their relations on the title of their offences, they drive hundreds of virtuous
persons to the same end, by forcing them to subsist by beggary or by crime.
The Assembly, their organ, acts before them the farce of deliberation with as
little decency as liberty. They act like the comedians of a fair before a riotous
audience; they act amidst the tumultuous cries of a mixed mob of ferocious men,
and of women lost to shame, who, according to their insolent fancies, direct,
control, applaud, explode them, and sometimes mix and take their seats amongst
them, domineering over them with a strange mixture of servile petulance and
proud, presumptuous authority. As they have inverted order in all things, the
gallery is in the place of the house. This assembly, which overthrows kings
and kingdoms, has not even the physiognomy and aspect of a grave legislative
body — nec color imperii, nec frons ulla senatus. They have a power given
to them, like that of the evil principle, to subvert and destroy, but none to
construct, except such machines as may be fitted for further subversion and
further destruction.
WHO is it that admires, and from the heart is attached to, national representative
assemblies, but must turn with horror and disgust from such a profane burlesque,
and abominable perversion of that sacred institute? Lovers of monarchy, lovers
of republics must alike abhor it. The members of your assembly must themselves
groan under the tyranny of which they have all the shame, none of the direction,
and little of the profit. I am sure many of the members who compose even the
majority of that body must feel as I do, notwithstanding the applauses of the
Revolution Society. Miserable king! miserable assembly! How must that assembly
be silently scandalized with those of their members who could call a day which
seemed to blot the sun out of heaven "un beau jour!"[14] How must
they be inwardly indignant at hearing others who thought fit to declare to them
"that the vessel of the state would fly forward in her course toward regeneration
with more speed than ever", from the stiff gale of treason and murder which
preceded our preacher's triumph! What must they have felt whilst, with outward
patience and inward indignation, they heard, of the slaughter of innocent gentlemen
in their houses, that "the blood spilled was not the most pure!" What
must they have felt, when they were besieged by complaints of disorders which
shook their country to its foundations, at being compelled coolly to tell the
complainants that they were under the protection of the law, and that they would
address the king (the captive king) to cause the laws to be enforced for their
protection; when the enslaved ministers of that captive king had formally notified
to them that there were neither law nor authority nor power left to protect?
What must they have felt at being obliged, as a felicitation on the present
new year, to request their captive king to forget the stormy period of the last,
on account of the great good which he was likely to produce to his people; to
the complete attainment of which good they adjourned the practical demonstrations
of their loyalty, assuring him of their obedience when he should no longer possess
any authority to command?
This address was made with much good nature and affection, to be sure. But among
the revolutions in France must be reckoned a considerable revolution in their
ideas of politeness. In England we are said to learn manners at second-hand
from your side of the water, and that we dress our behavior in the frippery
of France. If so, we are still in the old cut and have not so far conformed
to the new Parisian mode of good breeding as to think it quite in the most refined
strain of delicate compliment (whether in condolence or congratulation) to say,
to the most humiliated creature that crawls upon the earth, that great public
benefits are derived from the murder of his servants, the attempted assassination
of himself and of his wife, and the mortification, disgrace, and degradation
that he has personally suffered. It is a topic of consolation which our ordinary
of Newgate would be too humane to use to a criminal at the foot of the gallows.
I should have thought that the hangman of Paris, now that he is liberalized
by the vote of the National Assembly and is allowed his rank and arms in the
herald's college of the rights of men, would be too generous, too gallant a
man, too full of the sense of his new dignity to employ that cutting consolation
to any of the persons whom the lese nation might bring under the administration
of his executive power.
A man is fallen indeed when he is thus flattered. The anodyne draught of oblivion,
thus drugged, is well calculated to preserve a galling wakefulness and to feed
the living ulcer of a corroding memory. Thus to administer the opiate potion
of amnesty, powdered with all the ingredients of scorn and contempt, is to hold
to his lips, instead of "the balm of hurt minds", the cup of human
misery full to the brim and to force him to drink it to the dregs.
Yielding to reasons at least as forcible as those which were so delicately urged
in the compliment on the new year, the king of France will probably endeavor
to forget these events and that compliment. But history, who keeps a durable
record of all our acts and exercises her awful censure over the proceedings
of all sorts of sovereigns, will not forget either those events or the era of
this liberal refinement in the intercourse of mankind. History will record that
on the morning of the 6th of October, 1789, the king and queen of France, after
a day of confusion, alarm, dismay, and slaughter, lay down, under the pledged
security of public faith, to indulge nature in a few hours of respite and troubled,
melancholy repose. From this sleep the queen was first startled by the sentinel
at her door, who cried out to her to save herself by flight — that this
was the last proof of fidelity he could give — that they were upon him,
and he was dead. Instantly he was cut down. A band of cruel ruffians and assassins,
reeking with his blood, rushed into the chamber of the queen and pierced with
a hundred strokes of bayonets and poniards the bed, from whence this persecuted
woman had but just time to fly almost naked, and, through ways unknown to the
murderers, had escaped to seek refuge at the feet of a king and husband not
secure of his own life for a moment.
This king, to say no more of him, and this queen, and their infant children
(who once would have been the pride and hope of a great and generous people)
were then forced to abandon the sanctuary of the most splendid palace in the
world, which they left swimming in blood, polluted by massacre and strewed with
scattered limbs and mutilated carcasses. Thence they were conducted into the
capital of their kingdom.
Two had been selected from the unprovoked, unresisted, promiscuous slaughter,
which was made of the gentlemen of birth and family who composed the king's
body guard. These two gentlemen, with all the parade of an execution of justice,
were cruelly and publicly dragged to the block and beheaded in the great court
of the palace. Their heads were stuck upon spears and led the procession, whilst
the royal captives who followed in the train were slowly moved along, amidst
the horrid yells, and shrilling screams, and frantic dances, and infamous contumelies,
and all the unutterable abominations of the furies of hell in the abused shape
of the vilest of women. After they had been made to taste, drop by drop, more
than the bitterness of death in the slow torture of a journey of twelve miles,
protracted to six hours, they were, under a guard composed of those very soldiers
who had thus conducted them through this famous triumph, lodged in one of the
old palaces of Paris, now converted into a bastille for kings.
Is this a triumph to be consecrated at altars? to be commemorated with grateful
thanksgiving? to be offered to the divine humanity with fervent prayer and enthusiastic
ejaculation? ? These Theban and Thracian orgies, acted in France and applauded
only in the Old Jewry, I assure you, kindle prophetic enthusiasm in the minds
but of very few people in this kingdom, although a saint and apostle, who may
have revelations of his own and who has so completely vanquished all the mean
superstitions of the heart, may incline to think it pious and decorous to compare
it with the entrance into the world of the Prince of Peace, proclaimed in a
holy temple by a venerable sage, and not long before not worse announced by
the voice of angels to the quiet innocence of shepherds.
At first I was at a loss to account for this fit of unguarded transport. I knew,
indeed, that the sufferings of monarchs make a delicious repast to some sort
of palates. There were reflections which might serve to keep this appetite within
some bounds of temperance. But when I took one circumstance into my consideration,
I was obliged to confess that much allowance ought to be made for the Society,
and that the temptation was too strong for common discretion — I mean,
the circumstance of the Io Paean of the triumph, the animating cry which called
"for all the BISHOPS to be hanged on the lampposts",[15] might well
have brought forth a burst of enthusiasm on the foreseen consequences of this
happy day. I allow to so much enthusiasm some little deviation from prudence.
I allow this prophet to break forth into hymns of joy and thanksgiving on an
event which appears like the precursor of the Millennium and the projected fifth
monarchy in the destruction of all church establishments.
There was, however, (as in all human affairs there is) in the midst of this
joy something to exercise the patience of these worthy gentlemen and to try
the long-suffering of their faith. The actual murder of the king and queen,
and their child, was wanting to the other auspicious circumstances of this "beautiful
day". The actual murder of the bishops, though called for by so many holy
ejaculations, was also wanting. A group of regicide and sacrilegious slaughter
was indeed boldly sketched, but it was only sketched. It unhappily was left
unfinished in this great history-piece of the massacre of innocents. What hardy
pencil of a great master from the school of the rights of man will finish it
is to be seen hereafter. The age has not yet the complete benefit of that diffusion
of knowledge that has undermined superstition and error; and the king of France
wants another object or two to consign to oblivion, in consideration of all
the good which is to arise from his own sufferings and the patriotic crimes
of an enlightened age.[16]
EXTRACT of M. de Lally Tollendal's Second Letter to a Friend.
"Parlons du parti que j'ai pris; il est bien justifie dans ma conscience.
— Ni cette ville coupable, ni cette assemblee plus coupable encore, ne
meritoient que je me justifie; mais j'ai a coeur que vous, et les personnes
qui pensent comme vous, ne me condamnent pas. — Ma sante, je vous jure,
me rendoit mes fonctions impossibles; mais meme en les mettant de cote il a
ete au-dessus de mes forces de supporter plus long-tems l'horreur que me causoit
ce sang, — ces tetes — cette reine presque egorgee, — ce roi,
— amene esclave, — entrant a Paris, au milieu de ses assassins,
et precede des tetes de ses malheureux gardes. — Ces perfides jannissaires,
ces assassins, ces femmes cannibales, ce cri de, TOUS LES EVEQUES A LA LANTERNE,
dans le moment ou le roi entre sa capitale avec deux eveques de son conseil
dans sa voiture. Un coup de fusil, que j'ai vu tirer dans un des carosses de
la reine. M. Bailly appellant cela un beau jour. L'assemblee ayant declare froidement
le matin, qu'il n'etoit pas de sa dignite d'aller toute entiere environner le
roi. M. Mirabeau disant impunement dans cette assemblee, que le vaisseau de
l'etat, loin d'etre arrete dans sa course, s'elanceroit avec plus de rapidite
que jamais vers sa regeneration. M. Barnave, riant avec lui, quand des flots
de sang couloient autour de nous. Le vertueux Mounier[17] echappant par miracle
a vingt assassins, qui avoient voulu faire de sa tete un trophee de plus.
"Voila ce qui me fit jurer de ne plus mettre le pied dans cette caverne
d'Antropophages ou je n'avois plus de force d'elever la voix, ou depuis six
semaines je l'avois elevee en vain. Moi, Mounier, et tous les honnetes gens,
ont le dernier effort a faire pour le bien etoit (sic) d'en sortir. Aucune idee
de crainte ne s'est approchee de moi. Je rougirois de m'en defendre. J'avois
encore recu sur la route de la part de ce peuple, moins coupable que ceux qui
l'ont enivre de fureur, des acclamations, et des applaudissements, dont d'autres
auroient ete flattes, et qui m'ont fait fremir. C'est a l'indignation, c'est
a l'horreur, c'est aux convulsions physiques, que se seul aspect du sang me
fait eprouver que j'ai cede. On brave une seule mort; on la brave plusieurs
fois, quand elle peut etre utile. Mais aucune puissance sous le Ciel, mais aucune
opinion publique ou privee n'ont le droit de me condamner a souffrir inutilement
mille supplices par minute, et a perir de desespoir, de rage, au milieu des
triomphes, du crime que je n'ai pu arreter. Ils me proscriront, ils confisqueront
mes biens. Je labourerai la terre, et je ne les verrai plus. — Voila ma
justification. Vous pouvez la lire, la montrer, la laisser copier; tant pis
pour ceux qui ne la comprendront pas; ce ne sera alors moi qui auroit eu tort
de la leur donner".
This military man had not so good nerves as the peaceable gentleman of the Old
Jewry. — See Mons. Mounier's narrative of these transactions; a man also
of honour and virtue, and talents, and therefore a fugitive.
Although this work of our new light and knowledge did not go to the length that
in all probability it was intended it should be carried, yet I must think that
such treatment of any human creatures must be shocking to any but those who
are made for accomplishing revolutions. But I cannot stop here. Influenced by
the inborn feelings of my nature, and not being illuminated by a single ray
of this new-sprung modern light, I confess to you, Sir, that the exalted rank
of the persons suffering, and particularly the sex, the beauty, and the amiable
qualities of the descendant of so many kings and emperors, with the tender age
of royal infants, insensible only through infancy and innocence of the cruel
outrages to which their parents were exposed, instead of being a subject of
exultation, adds not a little to any sensibility on that most melancholy occasion.
I hear that the august person who was the principal object of our preacher's
triumph, though he supported himself, felt much on that shameful occasion. As
a man, it became him to feel for his wife and his children, and the faithful
guards of his person that were massacred in cold blood about him; as a prince,
it became him to feel for the strange and frightful transformation of his civilized
subjects, and to be more grieved for them than solicitous for himself. It derogates
little from his fortitude, while it adds infinitely to the honor of his humanity.
I am very sorry to say it, very sorry indeed, that such personages are in a
situation in which it is not unbecoming in us to praise the virtues of the great.
I hear, and I rejoice to hear, that the great lady, the other object of the
triumph, has borne that day (one is interested that beings made for suffering
should suffer well), and that she bears all the succeeding days, that she bears
the imprisonment of her husband, and her own captivity, and the exile of her
friends, and the insulting adulation of addresses, and the whole weight of her
accumulated wrongs, with a serene patience, in a manner suited to her rank and
race, and becoming the offspring of a sovereign distinguished for her piety
and her courage; that, like her, she has lofty sentiments; that she feels with
the dignity of a Roman matron; that in the last extremity she will save herself
from the last disgrace; and that, if she must fall, she will fall by no ignoble
hand.
It is now sixteen or seventeen years since I saw the queen of France, then the
dauphiness, at Versailles, and surely never lighted on this orb, which she hardly
seemed to touch, a more delightful vision. I saw her just above the horizon,
decorating and cheering the elevated sphere she just began to move in —
glittering like the morning star, full of life and splendor and joy. Oh! what
a revolution! and what a heart must I have to contemplate without emotion that
elevation and that fall! Little did I dream when she added titles of veneration
to those of enthusiastic, distant, respectful love, that she should ever be
obliged to carry the sharp antidote against disgrace concealed in that bosom;
little did I dream that I should have lived to see such disasters fallen upon
her in a nation of gallant men, in a nation of men of honor and of cavaliers.
I thought ten thousand swords must have leaped from their scabbards to avenge
even a look that threatened her with insult. But the age of chivalry is gone.
That of sophisters, economists; and calculators has succeeded; and the glory
of Europe is extinguished forever. Never, never more shall we behold that generous
loyalty to rank and sex, that proud submission, that dignified obedience, that
subordination of the heart which kept alive, even in servitude itself, the spirit
of an exalted freedom. The unbought grace of life, the cheap defense of nations,
the nurse of manly sentiment and heroic enterprise, is gone! It is gone, that
sensibility of principle, that chastity of honor which felt a stain like a wound,
which inspired courage whilst it mitigated ferocity, which ennobled whatever
it touched, and under which vice itself lost half its evil by losing all its
grossness.
THIS mixed system of opinion and sentiment had its origin in the ancient chivalry;
and the principle, though varied in its appearance by the varying state of human
affairs, subsisted and influenced through a long succession of generations even
to the time we live in. If it should ever be totally extinguished, the loss
I fear will be great. It is this which has given its character to modern Europe.
It is this which has distinguished it under all its forms of government, and
distinguished it to its advantage, from the states of Asia and possibly from
those states which flourished in the most brilliant periods of the antique world.
It was this which, without confounding ranks, had produced a noble equality
and handed it down through all the gradations of social life. It was this opinion
which mitigated kings into companions and raised private men to be fellows with
kings. Without force or opposition, it subdued the fierceness of pride and power,
it obliged sovereigns to submit to the soft collar of social esteem, compelled
stern authority to submit to elegance, and gave a domination, vanquisher of
laws, to be subdued by manners.
But now all is to be changed. All the pleasing illusions which made power gentle
and obedience liberal, which harmonized the different shades of life, and which,
by a bland assimilation, incorporated into politics the sentiments which beautify
and soften private society, are to be dissolved by this new conquering empire
of light and reason. All the decent drapery of life is to be rudely torn off.
All the super-added ideas, furnished from the wardrobe of a moral imagination,
which the heart owns and the understanding ratifies as necessary to cover the
defects of our naked, shivering nature, and to raise it to dignity in our own
estimation, are to be exploded as a ridiculous, absurd, and antiquated fashion.
On this scheme of things, a king is but a man, a queen is but a woman; a woman
is but an animal, and an animal not of the highest order. All homage paid to
the sex in general as such, and without distinct views, is to be regarded as
romance and folly. Regicide, and parricide, and sacrilege are but fictions of
superstition, corrupting jurisprudence by destroying its simplicity. The murder
of a king, or a queen, or a bishop, or a father are only common homicide; and
if the people are by any chance or in any way gainers by it, a sort of homicide
much the most pardonable, and into which we ought not to make too severe a scrutiny.
On the scheme of this barbarous philosophy, which is the offspring of cold hearts
and muddy understandings, and which is as void of solid wisdom as it is destitute
of all taste and elegance, laws are to be supported only by their own terrors
and by the concern which each individual may find in them from his own private
speculations or can spare to them from his own private interests. In the groves
of their academy, at the end of every vista, you see nothing but the gallows.
Nothing is left which engages the affections on the part of the commonwealth.
On the principles of this mechanic philosophy, our institutions can never be
embodied, if I may use the expression, in persons, so as to create in us love,
veneration, admiration, or attachment. But that sort of reason which banishes
the affections is incapable of filling their place. These public affections,
combined with manners, are required sometimes as supplements, sometimes as correctives,
always as aids to law. The precept given by a wise man, as well as a great critic,
for the construction of poems is equally true as to states: — Non satis
est pulchra esse poemata, dulcia sunto. There ought to be a system of manners
in every nation which a well-informed mind would be disposed to relish. To make
us love our country, our country ought to be lovely.
But power, of some kind or other, will survive the shock in which manners and
opinions perish; and it will find other and worse means for its support. The
usurpation which, in order to subvert ancient institutions, has destroyed ancient
principles will hold power by arts similar to those by which it has acquired
it. When the old feudal and chivalrous spirit of fealty, which, by freeing kings
from fear, freed both kings and subjects from the precautions of tyranny, shall
be extinct in the minds of men, plots and assassinations will be anticipated
by preventive murder and preventive confiscation, and that long roll of grim
and bloody maxims which form the political code of all power not standing on
its own honor and the honor of those who are to obey it.
Kings will be tyrants from policy when subjects are rebels from principle.
When ancient opinions and rules of life are taken away, the loss cannot possibly
be estimated. From that moment we have no compass to govern us; nor can we know
distinctly to what port we steer. Europe, undoubtedly, taken in a mass, was
in a flourishing condition the day on which your revolution was completed. How
much of that prosperous state was owing to the spirit of our old manners and
opinions is not easy to say; but as such causes cannot be indifferent in their
operation, we must presume that on the whole their operation was beneficial.
We are but too apt to consider things in the state in which we find them, without
sufficiently adverting to the causes by which they have been produced and possibly
may be upheld. Nothing is more certain than that our manners, our civilization,
and all the good things which are connected with manners and with civilization
have, in this European world of ours, depended for ages upon two principles
and were, indeed, the result of both combined: I mean the spirit of a gentleman
and the spirit of religion. The nobility and the clergy, the one by profession,
the other by patronage, kept learning in existence, even in the midst of arms
and confusions, and whilst governments were rather in their causes than formed.
Learning paid back what it received to nobility and to priesthood, and paid
it with usury, by enlarging their ideas and by furnishing their minds. Happy
if they had all continued to know their indissoluble union and their proper
place! Happy if learning, not debauched by ambition, had been satisfied to continue
the instructor, and not aspired to be the master! Along with its natural protectors
and guardians, learning will be cast into the mire and trodden down under the
hoofs of a swinish[18] multitude.
If, as I suspect, modern letters owe more than they are always willing to own
to ancient manners, so do other interests which we value full as much as they
are worth. Even commerce and trade and manufacture, the gods of our economical
politicians, are themselves perhaps but creatures, are themselves but effects
which, as first causes, we choose to worship. They certainly grew under the
same shade in which learning flourished. They, too, may decay with their natural
protecting principles. With you, for the present at least, they all threaten
to disappear together. Where trade and manufactures are wanting to a people,
and the spirit of nobility and religion remains, sentiment supplies, and not
always ill supplies, their place; but if commerce and the arts should be lost
in an experiment to try how well a state may stand without these old fundamental
principles, what sort of a thing must be a nation of gross, stupid, ferocious,
and, at the same time, poor and sordid barbarians, destitute of religion, honor,
or manly pride, possessing nothing at present, and hoping for nothing hereafter?
I wish you may not be going fast, and by the shortest cut, to that horrible
and disgustful situation. Already there appears a poverty of conception, a coarseness,
and a vulgarity in all the proceedings of the Assembly and of all their instructors.
Their liberty is not liberal. Their science is presumptuous ignorance. Their
humanity is savage and brutal.
It is not clear whether in England we learned those grand and decorous principles
and manners, of which considerable traces yet remain, from you or whether you
took them from us. But to you, I think, we trace them best. You seem to me to
be gentis incunabula nostrae. France has always more or less influenced manners
in England; and when your fountain is choked up and polluted, the stream will
not run long, or not run clear, with us or perhaps with any nation. This gives
all Europe, in my opinion, but too close and connected a concern in what is
done in France. Excuse me, therefore, if I have dwelt too long on the atrocious
spectacle of the 6th of October, 1789, or have given too much scope to the reflections
which have arisen in my mind on occasion of the most important of all revolutions,
which may be dated from that day — I mean a revolution in sentiments,
manners, and moral opinions. As things now stand, with everything respectable
destroyed without us, and an attempt to destroy within us every principle of
respect, one is almost forced to apologize for harboring the common feelings
of men.
WHY do I feel so differently from the Reverend Dr. Price and those of his lay
flock who will choose to adopt the sentiments of his discourse? — For
this plain reason: because it is natural I should; because we are so made as
to be affected at such spectacles with melancholy sentiments upon the unstable
condition of mortal prosperity and the tremendous uncertainty of human greatness;
because in those natural feelings we learn great lessons; because in events
like these our passions instruct our reason; because when kings are hurled from
their thrones by the Supreme Director of this great drama and become the objects
of insult to the base and of pity to the good, we behold such disasters in the
moral as we should behold a miracle in the physical order of things. We are
alarmed into reflection; our minds (as it has long since been observed) are
purified by terror and pity, our weak, unthinking pride is humbled under the
dispensations of a mysterious wisdom. Some tears might be drawn from me if such
a spectacle were exhibited on the stage. I should be truly ashamed of finding
in myself that superficial, theatric sense of painted distress whilst I could
exult over it in real life. With such a perverted mind I could never venture
to show my face at a tragedy. People would think the tears that Garrick formerly,
or that Siddons not long since, have extorted from me were the tears of hypocrisy;
I should know them to be the tears of folly.
Indeed, the theatre is a better school of moral sentiments than churches, where
the feelings of humanity are thus outraged. Poets who have to deal with an audience
not yet graduated in the school of the rights of men and who must apply themselves
to the moral constitution of the heart would not dare to produce such a triumph
as a matter of exultation. There, where men follow their natural impulses, they
would not bear the odious maxims of a Machiavellian policy, whether applied
to the attainments of monarchical or democratic tyranny. They would reject them
on the modern as they once did on the ancient stage, where they could not bear
even the hypothetical proposition of such wickedness in the mouth of a personated
tyrant, though suitable to the character he sustained. No theatric audience
in Athens would bear what has been borne in the midst of the real tragedy of
this triumphal day: a principal actor weighing, as it were, in scales hung in
a shop of horrors, so much actual crime against so much contingent advantage;
and after putting in and out weights, declaring that the balance was on the
side of the advantages. They would not bear to see the crimes of new democracy
posted as in a ledger against the crimes of old despotism, and the book-keepers
of politics finding democracy still in debt, but by no means unable or unwilling
to pay the balance. In the theater, the first intuitive glance, without any
elaborate process of reasoning, will show that this method of political computation
would justify every extent of crime. They would see that on these principles,
even where the very worst acts were not perpetrated, it was owing rather to
the fortune of the conspirators than to their parsimony in the expenditure of
treachery and blood. They would soon see that criminal means once tolerated
are soon preferred. They present a shorter cut to the object than through the
highway of the moral virtues. Justifying perfidy and murder for public benefit,
public benefit would soon become the pretext, and perfidy and murder the end,
until rapacity, malice, revenge, and fear more dreadful than revenge could satiate
their insatiable appetites. Such must be the consequences of losing, in the
splendor of these triumphs of the rights of men, all natural sense of wrong
and right.
But the reverend pastor exults in this "leading in triumph", because
truly Louis the Sixteenth was "an arbitrary monarch"; that is, in
other words, neither more nor less than because he was Louis the Sixteenth,
and because he had the misfortune to be born king of France, with the prerogatives
of which a long line of ancestors and a long acquiescence of the people, without
any act of his, had put him in possession. A misfortune it has indeed turned
out to him that he was born king of France. But misfortune is not crime, nor
is indiscretion always the greatest guilt. I shall never think that a prince
the acts of whose whole reign was a series of concessions to his subjects, who
was willing to relax his authority, to remit his prerogatives, to call his people
to a share of freedom not known, perhaps not desired, by their ancestors —
such a prince, though he should be subjected to the common frailties attached
to men and to princes, though he should have once thought it necessary to provide
force against the desperate designs manifestly carrying on against his person
and the remnants of his authority — though all this should be taken into
consideration, I shall be led with great difficulty to think he deserves the
cruel and insulting triumph of Paris and of Dr. Price. I tremble for the cause
of liberty from such an example to kings. I tremble for the cause of humanity
in the unpunished outrages of the most wicked of mankind. But there are some
people of that low and degenerate fashion of mind, that they look up with a
sort of complacent awe and admiration to kings who know to keep firm in their
seat, to hold a strict hand over their subjects, to assert their prerogative,
and, by the awakened vigilance of a severe despotism, to guard against the very
first approaches to freedom. Against such as these they never elevate their
voice. Deserters from principle, listed with fortune, they never see any good
in suffering virtue, nor any crime in prosperous usurpation.
If it could have been made clear to me that the king and queen of France (those
I mean who were such before the triumph) were inexorable and cruel tyrants,
that they had formed a deliberate scheme for massacring the National Assembly
(I think I have seen something like the latter insinuated in certain publications),
I should think their captivity just. If this be true, much more ought to have
been done, but done, in my opinion, in another manner. The punishment of real
tyrants is a noble and awful act of justice; and it has with truth been said
to be consolatory to the human mind. But if I were to punish a wicked king,
I should regard the dignity in avenging the crime. Justice is grave and decorous,
and in its punishments rather seems to submit to a necessity than to make a
choice. Had Nero, or Agrippina, or Louis the Eleventh, or Charles the Ninth
been the subject; if Charles the Twelfth of Sweden, after the murder of Patkul,
or his predecessor Christina, after the murder of Monaldeschi, had fallen into
your hands, Sir, or into mine, I am sure our conduct would have been different.
If the French king, or king of the French (or by whatever name he is known in
the new vocabulary of your constitution), has in his own person and that of
his queen really deserved these unavowed, but unavenged, murderous attempts
and those frequent indignities more cruel than murder, such a person would ill
deserve even that subordinate executory trust which I understand is to be placed
in him, nor is he fit to be called chief in a nation which he has outraged and
oppressed. A worse choice for such an office in a new commonwealth than that
of a deposed tyrant could not possibly be made. But to degrade and insult a
man as the worst of criminals and afterwards to trust him in your highest concerns
as a faithful, honest, and zealous servant is not consistent to reasoning, nor
prudent in policy, nor safe in practice. Those who could make such an appointment
must be guilty of a more flagrant breach of trust than any they have yet committed
against the people. As this is the only crime in which your leading politicians
could have acted inconsistently, I conclude that there is no sort of ground
for these horrid insinuations. I think no better of all the other calumnies.
IN ENGLAND, we give no credit to them. We are generous enemies; we are faithful
allies. We spurn from us with disgust and indignation the slanders of those
who bring us their anecdotes with the attestation of the flower-de-luce on their
shoulder. We have Lord George Gordon fast in Newgate; and neither his being
a public proselyte to Judaism, nor his having, in his zeal against Catholic
priests and all sorts of ecclesiastics, raised a mob (excuse the term, it is
still in use here) which pulled down all our prisons, have preserved to him
a liberty of which he did not render himself worthy by a virtuous use of it.
We have rebuilt Newgate and tenanted the mansion. We have prisons almost as
strong as the Bastille for those who dare to libel the queens of France. In
this spiritual retreat, let the noble libeller remain. Let him there meditate
on his Talmud until he learns a conduct more becoming his birth and parts, and
not so disgraceful to the ancient religion to which he has become a proselyte;
or until some persons from your side of the water, to please your new Hebrew
brethren, shall ransom him. He may then be enabled to purchase with the old
boards of the synagogue and a very small poundage on the long compound interest
of the thirty pieces of silver (Dr. Price has shown us what miracles compound
interest will perform in 1790 years,), the lands which are lately discovered
to have been usurped by the Gallican church. Send us your Popish archbishop
of Paris, and we will send you our Protestant Rabbin. We shall treat the person
you send us in exchange like a gentleman and an honest man, as he is; but pray
let him bring with him the fund of his hospitality, bounty, and charity, and,
depend upon it, we shall never confiscate a shilling of that honorable and pious
fund, nor think of enriching the treasury with the spoils of the poor-box.
To tell you the truth, my dear Sir, I think the honor of our nation to be somewhat
concerned in the disclaimer of the proceedings of this society of the Old Jewry
and the London Tavern. I have no man's proxy. I speak only for myself when I
disclaim, as I do with all possible earnestness, all communion with the actors
in that triumph or with the admirers of it. When I assert anything else as concerning
the people of England, I speak from observation, not from authority, but I speak
from the experience I have had in a pretty extensive and mixed communication
with the inhabitants of this kingdom, of all descriptions and ranks, and after
a course of attentive observations begun early in life and continued for nearly
forty years. I have often been astonished, considering that we are divided from
you but by a slender dyke of about twenty-four miles, and that the mutual intercourse
between the two countries has lately been very great, to find how little you
seem to know of us. I suspect that this is owing to your forming a judgment
of this nation from certain publications which do very erroneously, if they
do at all, represent the opinions and dispositions generally prevalent in England.
The vanity, restlessness, petulance, and spirit of intrigue, of several petty
cabals, who attempt to hide their total want of consequence in bustle and noise,
and puffing, and mutual quotation of each other, makes you imagine that our
contemptuous neglect of their abilities is a mark of general acquiescence in
their opinions. No such thing, I assure you. Because half a dozen grasshoppers
under a fern make the field ring with their importunate chink, whilst thousands
of great cattle, reposed beneath the shadow of the British oak, chew the cud
and are silent, pray do not imagine that those who make the noise are the only
inhabitants of the field; that, of course, they are many in number, or that,
after all, they are other than the little, shrivelled, meager, hopping, though
loud and troublesome, insects of the hour.
I almost venture to affirm that not one in a hundred amongst us participates
in the "triumph" of the Revolution Society. If the king and queen
of France, and their children, were to fall into our hands by the chance of
war, in the most acrimonious of all hostilities (I deprecate such an event,
I deprecate such hostility), they would be treated with another sort of triumphal
entry into London. We formerly have had a king of France in that situation;
you have read how he was treated by the victor in the field, and in what manner
he was afterwards received in England. Four hundred years have gone over us,
but I believe we are not materially changed since that period. Thanks to our
sullen resistance to innovation, thanks to the cold sluggishness of our national
character, we still bear the stamp of our forefathers. We have not (as I conceive)
lost the generosity and dignity of thinking of the fourteenth century, nor as
yet have we subtilized ourselves into savages. We are not the converts of Rousseau;
we are not the disciples of Voltaire; Helvetius has made no progress amongst
us. Atheists are not our preachers; madmen are not our lawgivers. We know that
we have made no discoveries, and we think that no discoveries are to be made
in morality, nor many in the great principles of government, nor in the ideas
of liberty, which were understood long before we were born, altogether as well
as they will be after the grace has heaped its mold upon our presumption and
the silent tomb shall have imposed its law on our pert loquacity. In England
we have not yet been completely embowelled of our natural entrails; we still
feel within us, and we cherish and cultivate, those inbred sentiments which
are the faithful guardians, the active monitors of our duty, the true supporters
of all liberal and manly morals. We have not been drawn and trussed, in order
that we may be filled, like stuffed birds in a museum, with chaff and rags and
paltry blurred shreds of paper about the rights of men. We preserve the whole
of our feelings still native and entire, unsophisticated by pedantry and infidelity.
We have real hearts of flesh and blood beating in our bosoms. We fear God; we
look up with awe to kings, with affection to parliaments, with duty to magistrates,
with reverence to priests, and with respect to nobility.[19] Why? Because when
such ideas are brought before our minds, it is natural to be so affected; because
all other feelings are false and spurious and tend to corrupt our minds, to
vitiate our primary morals, to render us unfit for rational liberty, and, by
teaching us a servile, licentious, and abandoned insolence, to be our low sport
for a few holidays, to make us perfectly fit for, and justly deserving of, slavery
through the whole course of our lives.
YOU see, Sir, that in this enlightened age I am bold enough to confess that
we are generally men of untaught feelings, that, instead of casting away all
our old prejudices, we cherish them to a very considerable degree, and, to take
more shame to ourselves, we cherish them because they are prejudices; and the
longer they have lasted and the more generally they have prevailed, the more
we cherish them. We are afraid to put men to live and trade each on his own
private stock of reason, because we suspect that this stock in each man is small,
and that the individuals would do better to avail themselves of the general
bank and capital of nations and of ages. Many of our men of speculation, instead
of exploding general prejudices, employ their sagacity to discover the latent
wisdom which prevails in them. If they find what they seek, and they seldom
fail, they think it more wise to continue the prejudice, with the reason involved,
than to cast away the coat of prejudice and to leave nothing but the naked reason;
because prejudice, with its reason, has a motive to give action to that reason,
and an affection which will give it permanence. Prejudice is of ready application
in the emergency; it previously engages the mind in a steady course of wisdom
and virtue and does not leave the man hesitating in the moment of decision skeptical,
puzzled, and unresolved. Prejudice renders a man's virtue his habit, and not
a series of unconnected acts. Through just prejudice, his duty becomes a part
of his nature.
Your literary men and your politicians, and so do the whole clan of the enlightened
among us, essentially differ in these points. They have no respect for the wisdom
of others, but they pay it off by a very full measure of confidence in their
own. With them it is a sufficient motive to destroy an old scheme of things
because it is an old one. As to the new, they are in no sort of fear with regard
to the duration of a building run up in haste, because duration is no object
to those who think little or nothing has been done before their time, and who
place all their hopes in discovery. They conceive, very systematically, that
all things which give perpetuity are mischievous, and therefore they are at
inexpiable war with all establishments. They think that government may vary
like modes of dress, and with as little ill effect; that there needs no principle
of attachment, except a sense of present convenience, to any constitution of
the state. They always speak as if they were of opinion that there is a singular
species of compact between them and their magistrates which binds the magistrate,
but which has nothing reciprocal in it, but that the majesty of the people has
a right to dissolve it without any reason but its will. Their attachment to
their country itself is only so far as it agrees with some of their fleeting
projects; it begins and ends with that scheme of polity which falls in with
their momentary opinion.
These doctrines, or rather sentiments, seem prevalent with your new statesmen.
But they are wholly different from those on which we have always acted in this
country.
I hear it is sometimes given out in France that what is doing among you is after
the example of England. I beg leave to affirm that scarcely anything done with
you has originated from the practice or the prevalent opinions of this people,
either in the act or in the spirit of the proceeding. Let me add that we are
as unwilling to learn these lessons from France as we are sure that we never
taught them to that nation. The cabals here who take a sort of share of your
transactions as yet consist of but a handful of people. If, unfortunately, by
their intrigues, their sermons, their publications, and by a confidence derived
from an expected union with the counsels and forces of the French nation, they
should draw considerable numbers into their faction, and in consequence should
seriously attempt anything here in imitation of what has been done with you,
the event, I dare venture to prophesy, will be that, with some trouble to their
country, they will soon accomplish their own destruction. This people refused
to change their law in remote ages from respect to the infallibility of popes,
and they will not now alter it from a pious implicit faith in the dogmatism
of philosophers, though the former was armed with the anathema and crusade,
and though the latter should act with the libel and the lamp-iron.
Formerly, your affairs were your own concern only. We felt for them as men,
but we kept aloof from them because we were not citizens of France. But when
we see the model held up to ourselves, we must feel as Englishmen, and feeling,
we must provide as Englishmen. Your affairs, in spite of us, are made a part
of our interest, so far at least as to keep at a distance your panacea, or your
plague. If it be a panacea, we do not want it. We know the consequences of unnecessary
physic. If it be a plague, it is such a plague that the precautions of the most
severe quarantine ought to be established against it.
I hear on all hands that a cabal calling itself philosophic receives the glory
of many of the late proceedings, and that their opinions and systems are the
true actuating spirit of the whole of them. I have heard of no party in England,
literary or political, at any time, known by such a description. It is not with
you composed of those men, is it, whom the vulgar in their blunt, homely style
commonly call atheists and infidels? If it be, I admit that we, too, have had
writers of that description who made some noise in their day. At present they
repose in lasting oblivion. Who, born within the last forty years, has read
one word of Collins, and Toland, and Tindal, and Chubb, and Morgan, and that
whole race who called themselves Freethinkers? Who now reads Bolingbroke? Who
ever read him through? Ask the booksellers of London what is become of all these
lights of the world. In as few years their few successors will go to the family
vault of "all the Capulets". But whatever they were, or are, with
us, they were and are wholly unconnected individuals. With us they kept the
common nature of their kind and were not gregarious. They never acted in corps
or were known as a faction in the state, nor presumed to influence in that name
or character, or for the purposes of such a faction, on any of our public concerns.
Whether they ought so to exist and so be permitted to act is another question.
As such cabals have not existed in England, so neither has the spirit of them
had any influence in establishing the original frame of our constitution or
in any one of the several reparations and improvements it has undergone. The
whole has been done under the auspices, and is confirmed by the sanctions, of
religion and piety. The whole has emanated from the simplicity of our national
character and from a sort of native plainness and directness of understanding,
which for a long time characterized those men who have successively obtained
authority amongst us. This disposition still remains, at least in the great
body of the people.
WE KNOW, AND WHAT IS BETTER, we feel inwardly, that religion is the basis of
civil society and the source of all good and of all comfort.[20] In England
we are so convinced of this, that there is no rust of superstition with which
the accumulated absurdity of the human mind might have crusted it over in the
course of ages, that ninety-nine in a hundred of the people of England would
not prefer to impiety. We shall never be such fools as to call in an enemy to
the substance of any system to remove its corruptions, to supply its defects,
or to perfect its construction. If our religious tenets should ever want a further
elucidation, we shall not call on atheism to explain them. We shall not light
up our temple from that unhallowed fire. It will be illuminated with other lights.
It will be perfumed with other incense than the infectious stuff which is imported
by the smugglers of adulterated metaphysics. If our ecclesiastical establishment
should want a revision, it is not avarice or rapacity, public or private, that
we shall employ for the audit, or receipt, or application of its consecrated
revenue. Violently condemning neither the Greek nor the Armenian, nor, since
heats are subsided, the Roman system of religion, we prefer the Protestant,
not because we think it has less of the Christian religion in it, but because,
in our judgment, it has more. We are Protestants, not from indifference, but
from zeal.
We know, and it is our pride to know, that man is by his constitution a religious
animal; that atheism is against, not only our reason, but our instincts; and
that it cannot prevail long. But if, in the moment of riot and in a drunken
delirium from the hot spirit drawn out of the alembic of hell, which in France
is now so furiously boiling, we should uncover our nakedness by throwing off
that Christian religion which has hitherto been our boast and comfort, and one
great source of civilization amongst us and amongst many other nations, we are
apprehensive (being well aware that the mind will not endure a void) that some
uncouth, pernicious, and degrading superstition might take place of it.
For that reason, before we take from our establishment the natural, human means
of estimation and give it up to contempt, as you have done, and in doing it
have incurred the penalties you well deserve to suffer, we desire that some
other may be presented to us in the place of it. We shall then form our judgment.
On these ideas, instead of quarrelling with establishments, as some do who have
made a philosophy and a religion of their hostility to such institutions, we
cleave closely to them. We are resolved to keep an established church, an established
monarchy, an established aristocracy, and an established democracy, each in
the degree it exists, and in no greater. I shall show you presently how much
of each of these we possess.
It has been the misfortune (not, as these gentlemen think it, the glory) of
this age that everything is to be discussed as if the constitution of our country
were to be always a subject rather of altercation than enjoyment. For this reason,
as well as for the satisfaction of those among you (if any such you have among
you) who may wish to profit of examples, I venture to trouble you with a few
thoughts upon each of these establishments. I do not think they were unwise
in ancient Rome who, when they wished to new-model their laws, set commissioners
to examine the best constituted republics within their reach.
First, I beg leave to speak of our church establishment, which is the first
of our prejudices, not a prejudice destitute of reason, but involving in it
profound and extensive wisdom. I speak of it first. It is first and last and
midst in our minds. For, taking ground on that religious system of which we
are now in possession, we continue to act on the early received and uniformly
continued sense of mankind. That sense not only, like a wise architect, hath
built up the august fabric of states, but, like a provident proprietor, to preserve
the structure from profanation and ruin, as a sacred temple purged from all
the impurities of fraud and violence and injustice and tyranny, hath solemnly
and forever consecrated the commonwealth and all that officiate in it. This
consecration is made that all who administer the government of men, in which
they stand in the person of God himself, should have high and worthy notions
of their function and destination, that their hope should be full of immortality,
that they should not look to the paltry pelf of the moment nor to the temporary
and transient praise of the vulgar, but to a solid, permanent existence in the
permanent part of their nature, and to a permanent fame and glory in the example
they leave as a rich inheritance to the world.
Such sublime principles ought to be infused into persons of exalted situations,
and religious establishments provided that may continually revive and enforce
them. Every sort of moral, every sort of civil, every sort of politic institution,
aiding the rational and natural ties that connect the human understanding and
affections to the divine, are not more than necessary in order to build up that
wonderful structure Man, whose prerogative it is to be in a great degree a creature
of his own making, and who, when made as he ought to be made, is destined to
hold no trivial place in the creation. But whenever man is put over men, as
the better nature ought ever to preside, in that case more particularly, he
should as nearly as possible be approximated to his perfection.
The consecration of the state by a state religious establishment is necessary,
also, to operate with a wholesome awe upon free citizens, because, in order
to secure their freedom, they must enjoy some determinate portion of power.
To them, therefore, a religion connected with the state, and with their duty
toward it, becomes even more necessary than in such societies where the people,
by the terms of their subjection, are confined to private sentiments and the
management of their own family concerns. All persons possessing any portion
of power ought to be strongly and awfully impressed with an idea that they act
in trust, and that they are to account for their conduct in that trust to the
one great Master, Author, and Founder of society.
This principle ought even to be more strongly impressed upon the minds of those
who compose the collective sovereignty than upon those of single princes. Without
instruments, these princes can do nothing. Whoever uses instruments, in finding
helps, finds also impediments. Their power is, therefore, by no means complete,
nor are they safe in extreme abuse. Such persons, however elevated by flattery,
arrogance, and self-opinion, must be sensible that, whether covered or not by
positive law, in some way or other they are accountable even here for the abuse
of their trust. If they are not cut off by a rebellion of their people, they
may be strangled by the very janissaries kept for their security against all
other rebellion. Thus we have seen the king of France sold by his soldiers for
an increase of pay. But where popular authority is absolute and unrestrained,
the people have an infinitely greater, because a far better founded, confidence
in their own power. They are themselves, in a great measure, their own instruments.
They are nearer to their objects. Besides, they are less under responsibility
to one of the greatest controlling powers on the earth, the sense of fame and
estimation. The share of infamy that is likely to fall to the lot of each individual
in public acts is small indeed, the operation of opinion being in the inverse
ratio to the number of those who abuse power. Their own approbation of their
own acts has to them the appearance of a public judgment in their favor. A perfect
democracy is, therefore, the most shameless thing in the world. As it is the
most shameless, it is also the most fearless. No man apprehends in his person
that he can be made subject to punishment. Certainly the people at large never
ought, for as all punishments are for example toward the conservation of the
people at large, the people at large can never become the subject of punishment
by any human hand.[21] It is therefore of infinite importance that they should
not be suffered to imagine that their will, any more than that of kings, is
the standard of right and wrong. They ought to be persuaded that they are full
as little entitled, and far less qualified with safety to themselves, to use
any arbitrary power whatsoever; that therefore they are not, under a false show
of liberty, but in truth to exercise an unnatural, inverted domination, tyrannically
to exact from those who officiate in the state not an entire devotion to their
interest, which is their right, but an abject submission to their occasional
will, extinguishing thereby in all those who serve them all moral principle,
all sense of dignity, all use of judgment, and all consistency of character;
whilst by the very same process they give themselves up a proper, a suitable,
but a most contemptible prey to the servile ambition of popular sycophants or
courtly flatterers.
When the people have emptied themselves of all the lust of selfish will, which
without religion it is utterly impossible they ever should, when they are conscious
that they exercise, and exercise perhaps in a higher link of the order of delegation,
the power, which to be legitimate must be according to that eternal, immutable
law in which will and reason are the same, they will be more careful how they
place power in base and incapable hands. In their nomination to office, they
will not appoint to the exercise of authority as to a pitiful job, but as to
a holy function, not according to their sordid, selfish interest, nor to their
wanton caprice, nor to their arbitrary will, but they will confer that power
(which any man may well tremble to give or to receive) on those only in whom
they may discern that predominant proportion of active virtue and wisdom, taken
together and fitted to the charge, such as in the great and inevitable mixed
mass of human imperfections and infirmities is to be found.
When they are habitually convinced that no evil can be acceptable, either in
the act or the permission, to him whose essence is good, they will be better
able to extirpate out of the minds of all magistrates, civil, ecclesiastical,
or military, anything that bears the least resemblance to a proud and lawless
domination.
But one of the first and most leading principles on which the commonwealth and
the laws are consecrated is, lest the temporary possessors and life-renters
in it, unmindful of what they have received from their ancestors or of what
is due to their posterity, should act as if they were the entire masters, that
they should not think it among their rights to cut off the entail or commit
waste on the inheritance by destroying at their pleasure the whole original
fabric of their society, hazarding to leave to those who come after them a ruin
instead of an habitation — and teaching these successors as little to
respect their contrivances as they had themselves respected the institutions
of their forefathers. By this unprincipled facility of changing the state as
often, and as much, and in as many ways as there are floating fancies or fashions,
the whole chain and continuity of the commonwealth would be broken. No one generation
could link with the other. Men would become little better than the flies of
a summer.
And first of all, the science of jurisprudence, the pride of the human intellect,
which with all its defects, redundancies, and errors is the collected reason
of ages, combining the principles of original justice with the infinite variety
of human concerns, as a heap of old exploded errors, would be no longer studied.
Personal self-sufficiency and arrogance (the certain attendants upon all those
who have never experienced a wisdom greater than their own) would usurp the
tribunal. Of course, no certain laws, establishing invariable grounds of hope
and fear, would keep the actions of men in a certain course or direct them to
a certain end. Nothing stable in the modes of holding property or exercising
function could form a solid ground on which any parent could speculate in the
education of his offspring or in a choice for their future establishment in
the world. No principles would be early worked into the habits. As soon as the
most able instructor had completed his laborious course of institution, instead
of sending forth his pupil, accomplished in a virtuous discipline, fitted to
procure him attention and respect in his place in society, he would find everything
altered, and that he had turned out a poor creature to the contempt and derision
of the world, ignorant of the true grounds of estimation. Who would insure a
tender and delicate sense of honor to beat almost with the first pulses of the
heart when no man could know what would be the test of honor in a nation continually
varying the standard of its coin? No part of life would retain its acquisitions.
Barbarism with regard to science and literature, unskilfulness with regard to
arts and manufactures, would infallibly succeed to the want of a steady education
and settled principle; and thus the commonwealth itself would, in a few generations,
crumble away, be disconnected into the dust and powder of individuality, and
at length dispersed to all the winds of heaven.
To avoid, therefore, the evils of inconstancy and versatility, ten thousand
times worse than those of obstinacy and the blindest prejudice, we have consecrated
the state, that no man should approach to look into its defects or corruptions
but with due caution, that he should never dream of beginning its reformation
by its subversion, that he should approach to the faults of the state as to
the wounds of a father, with pious awe and trembling solicitude. By this wise
prejudice we are taught to look with horror on those children of their country
who are prompt rashly to hack that aged parent in pieces and put him into the
kettle of magicians, in hopes that by their poisonous weeds and wild incantations
they may regenerate the paternal constitution and renovate their father's life.
SOCIETY is indeed a contract. Subordinate contracts for objects of mere occasional
interest may be dissolved at pleasure — but the state ought not to be
considered as nothing better than a partnership agreement in a trade of pepper
and coffee, calico, or tobacco, or some other such low concern, to be taken
up for a little temporary interest, and to be dissolved by the fancy of the
parties. It is to be looked on with other reverence, because it is not a partnership
in things subservient only to the gross animal existence of a temporary and
perishable nature. It is a partnership in all science; a partnership in all
art; a partnership in every virtue and in all perfection. As the ends of such
a partnership cannot be obtained in many generations, it becomes a partnership
not only between those who are living, but between those who are living, those
who are dead, and those who are to be born. Each contract of each particular
state is but a clause in the great primeval contract of eternal society, linking
the lower with the higher natures, connecting the visible and invisible world,
according to a fixed compact sanctioned by the inviolable oath which holds all
physical and all moral natures, each in their appointed place. This law is not
subject to the will of those who by an obligation above them, and infinitely
superior, are bound to submit their will to that law. The municipal corporations
of that universal kingdom are not morally at liberty at their pleasure, and
on their speculations of a contingent improvement, wholly to separate and tear
asunder the bands of their subordinate community and to dissolve it into an
unsocial, uncivil, unconnected chaos of elementary principles. It is the first
and supreme necessity only, a necessity that is not chosen but chooses, a necessity
paramount to deliberation, that admits no discussion and demands no evidence,
which alone can justify a resort to anarchy. This necessity is no exception
to the rule, because this necessity itself is a part, too, of that moral and
physical disposition of things to which man must be obedient by consent or force;
but if that which is only submission to necessity should be made the object
of choice, the law is broken, nature is disobeyed, and the rebellious are outlawed,
cast forth, and exiled from this world of reason, and order, and peace, and
virtue, and fruitful penitence, into the antagonist world of madness, discord,
vice, confusion, and unavailing sorrow.
These, my dear Sir, are, were, and, I think, long will be the sentiments of
not the least learned and reflecting part of this kingdom. They who are included
in this description form their opinions on such grounds as such persons ought
to form them. The less inquiring receive them from an authority which those
whom Providence dooms to live on trust need not be ashamed to rely on. These
two sorts of men move in the same direction, though in a different place. They
both move with the order of the universe.
They all know or feel this great ancient truth: Quod illi principi et praepotenti
Deo qui omnem hunc mundum regit, nihil eorum quae quidem fiant in terris acceptius
quam concilia et coetus hominum jure sociati quae civitates appellantur. They
take this tenet of the head and heart, not from the great name which it immediately
bears, nor from the greater from whence it is derived, but from that which alone
can give true weight and sanction to any learned opinion, the common nature
and common relation of men. Persuaded that all things ought to be done with
reference, and referring all to the point of reference to which all should be
directed, they think themselves bound, not only as individuals in the sanctuary
of the heart or as congregated in that personal capacity, to renew the memory
of their high origin and cast, but also in their corporate character to perform
their national homage to the institutor and author and protector of civil society;
without which civil society man could not by any possibility arrive at the perfection
of which his nature is capable, nor even make a remote and faint approach to
it. They conceive that He who gave our nature to be perfected by our virtue
willed also the necessary means of its perfection. He willed therefore the state
— He willed its connection with the source and original archetype of all
perfection. They who are convinced of this His will, which is the law of laws
and the sovereign of sovereigns, cannot think it reprehensible that this our
corporate fealty and homage, that this our recognition of a seigniory paramount,
I had almost said this oblation of the state itself as a worthy offering on
the high altar of universal praise, should be performed as all public, solemn
acts are performed, in buildings, in music, in decoration, in speech, in the
dignity of persons, according to the customs of mankind taught by their nature;
that is, with modest splendor and unassuming state, with mild majesty and sober
pomp. For those purposes they think some part of the wealth of the country is
as usefully employed as it can be in fomenting the luxury of individuals. It
is the public ornament. It is the public consolation. It nourishes the public
hope. The poorest man finds his own importance and dignity in it, whilst the
wealth and pride of individuals at every moment makes the man of humble rank
and fortune sensible of his inferiority and degrades and vilifies his condition.
It is for the man in humble life, and to raise his nature and to put him in
mind of a state in which the privileges of opulence will cease, when he will
be equal by nature, and may be more than equal by virtue, that this portion
of the general wealth of his country is employed and sanctified.
I assure you I do not aim at singularity. I give you opinions which have been
accepted amongst us, from very early times to this moment, with a continued
and general approbation, and which indeed are worked into my mind that I am
unable to distinguish what I have learned from others from the results of my
own meditation.
It is on some such principles that the majority of the people of England, far
from thinking a religious national establishment unlawful, hardly think it lawful
to be without one. In France you are wholly mistaken if you do not believe us
above all other things attached to it, and beyond all other nations; and when
this people has acted unwisely and unjustifiably in its favor (as in some instances
they have done most certainly), in their very errors you will at least discover
their zeal.
This principle runs through the whole system of their polity. They do not consider
their church establishment as convenient, but as essential to their state, not
as a thing heterogeneous and separable, something added for accommodation, what
they may either keep or lay aside according to their temporary ideas of convenience.
They consider it as the foundation of their whole constitution, with which,
and with every part of which, it holds an indissoluble union. Church and state
are ideas inseparable in their minds, and scarcely is the one ever mentioned
without mentioning the other.
Our education is so formed as to confirm and fix this impression. Our education
is in a manner wholly in the hands of ecclesiastics, and in all stages from
infancy to manhood. Even when our youth, leaving schools and universities, enter
that most important period of life which begins to link experience and study
together, and when with that view they visit other countries, instead of old
domestics whom we have seen as governors to principal men from other parts,
three-fourths of those who go abroad with our young nobility and gentlemen are
ecclesiastics, not as austere masters, nor as mere followers, but as friends
and companions of a graver character, and not seldom persons as well-born as
themselves. With them, as relations, they most constantly keep a close connection
through life. By this connection we conceive that we attach our gentlemen to
the church, and we liberalize the church by an intercourse with the leading
characters of the country.
So tenacious are we of the old ecclesiastical modes and fashions of institution
that very little alteration has been made in them since the fourteenth or fifteenth
century; adhering in this particular, as in all things else, to our old settled
maxim, never entirely nor at once to depart from antiquity. We found these old
institutions, on the whole, favorable to morality and discipline, and we thought
they were susceptible of amendment without altering the ground. We thought that
they were capable of receiving and meliorating, and above all of preserving,
the accessions of science and literature, as the order of Providence should
successively produce them. And after all, with this Gothic and monkish education
(for such it is in the groundwork) we may put in our claim to as ample and as
early a share in all the improvements in science, in arts, and in literature
which have illuminated and adorned the modern world, as any other nation in
Europe. We think one main cause of this improvement was our not despising the
patrimony of knowledge which was left us by our forefathers.
It is from our attachment to a church establishment that the English nation
did not think it wise to entrust that great, fundamental interest of the whole
to what they trust no part of their civil or military public service, that is,
to the unsteady and precarious contribution of individuals. They go further.
They certainly never have suffered, and never will suffer, the fixed estate
of the church to be converted into a pension, to depend on the treasury and
to be delayed, withheld, or perhaps to be extinguished by fiscal difficulties,
which difficulties may sometimes be pretended for political purposes, and are
in fact often brought on by the extravagance, negligence, and rapacity of politicians.
The people of England think that they have constitutional motives, as well as
religious, against any project of turning their independent clergy into ecclesiastical
pensioners of state. They tremble for their liberty, from the influence of a
clergy dependent on the crown; they tremble for the public tranquillity from
the disorders of a factious clergy, if it were made to depend upon any other
than the crown. They therefore made their church, like their king and their
nobility, independent.
From the united considerations of religion and constitutional policy, from their
opinion of a duty to make sure provision for the consolation of the feeble and
the instruction of the ignorant, they have incorporated and identified the estate
of the church with the mass of private property, of which the state is not the
proprietor, either for use or dominion, but the guardian only and the regulator.
They have ordained that the provision of this establishment might be as stable
as the earth on which it stands, and should not fluctuate with the Euripus of
funds and actions.
The men of England, the men, I mean, of light and leading in England, whose
wisdom (if they have any) is open and direct, would be ashamed, as of a silly
deceitful trick, to profess any religion in name which, by their proceedings,
they appear to contemn.
If by their conduct (the only language that rarely lies) they seemed to regard
the great ruling principle of the moral and the natural world as a mere invention
to keep the vulgar in obedience, they apprehend that by such a conduct they
would defeat the politic purpose they have in view. They would find it difficult
to make others believe in a system to which they manifestly give no credit themselves.
The Christian statesmen of this land would indeed first provide for the multitude,
because it is the multitude, and is therefore, as such, the first object in
the ecclesiastical institution, and in all institutions. They have been taught
that the circumstance of the gospel's being preached to the poor was one of
the great tests of its true mission. They think, therefore, that those do not
believe it who do not take care it should be preached to the poor. But as they
know that charity is not confined to any one description, but ought to apply
itself to all men who have wants, they are not deprived of a due and anxious
sensation of pity to the distresses of the miserable great. They are not repelled
through a fastidious delicacy, at the stench of their arrogance and presumption,
from a medicinal attention to their mental blotches and running sores. They
are sensible that religious instruction is of more consequence to them than
to any others — from the greatness of the temptation to which they are
exposed; from the important consequences that attend their faults; from the
contagion of their ill example; from the necessity of bowing down the stubborn
neck of their pride and ambition to the yoke of moderation and virtue; from
a consideration of the fat stupidity and gross ignorance concerning what imports
men most to know, which prevails at courts, and at the head of armies, and in
senates as much as at the loom and in the field.
The English people are satisfied that to the great the consolations of religion
are as necessary as its instructions. They, too, are among the unhappy. They
feel personal pain and domestic sorrow. In these they have no privilege, but
are subject to pay their full contingent to the contributions levied on mortality.
They want this sovereign balm under their gnawing cares and anxieties, which,
being less conversant about the limited wants of animal life, range without
limit, and are diversified by infinite combinations, in the wild and unbounded
regions of imagination. Some charitable dole is wanting to these our often very
unhappy brethren to fill the gloomy void that reigns in minds which have nothing
on earth to hope or fear; something to relieve in the killing languor and overlabored
lassitude of those who have nothing to do; something to excite an appetite to
existence in the palled satiety which attends on all pleasures which may be
bought where nature is not left to her own process, where even desire is anticipated,
and therefore fruition defeated by meditated schemes and contrivances of delight;
and no interval, no obstacle, is interposed between the wish and the accomplishment.
The people of England know how little influence the teachers of religion are
likely to have with the wealthy and powerful of long standing, and how much
less with the newly fortunate, if they appear in a manner no way assorted to
those with whom they must associate, and over whom they must even exercise,
in some cases, something like an authority. What must they think of that body
of teachers if they see it in no part above the establishment of their domestic
servants? If the poverty were voluntary, there might be some difference. Strong
instances of self-denial operate powerfully on our minds, and a man who has
no wants has obtained great freedom and firmness and even dignity. But as the
mass of any description of men are but men, and their poverty cannot be voluntary,
that disrespect which attends upon all lay poverty will not depart from the
ecclesiastical. Our provident constitution has therefore taken care that those
who are to instruct presumptuous ignorance, those who are to be censors over
insolent vice, should neither incur their contempt nor live upon their alms,
nor will it tempt the rich to a neglect of the true medicine of their minds.
For these reasons, whilst we provide first for the poor, and with a parental
solicitude, we have not relegated religion (like something we were ashamed to
show) to obscure municipalities or rustic villages. No! we will have her to
exalt her mitred front in courts and parliaments. We will have her mixed throughout
the whole mass of life and blended with all the classes of society. The people
of England will show to the haughty potentates of the world, and to their talking
sophisters, that a free, a generous, an informed nation honors the high magistrates
of its church; that it will not suffer the insolence of wealth and titles, or
any other species of proud pretension, to look down with scorn upon what they
looked up to with reverence; nor presume to trample on that acquired personal
nobility which they intend always to be, and which often is, the fruit, not
the reward (for what can be the reward?) of learning, piety, and virtue. They
can see, without pain or grudging, an archbishop precede a duke. They can see
a bishop of Durham, or a bishop of Winchester, in possession of ten thousand
pounds a year, and cannot conceive why it is in worse hands than estates to
the like amount in the hands of this earl or that squire, although it may be
true that so many dogs and horses are not kept by the former and fed with the
victuals which ought to nourish the children of the people. It is true, the
whole church revenue is not always employed, and to every shilling, in charity,
nor perhaps ought it, but something is generally employed. It is better to cherish
virtue and humanity by leaving much to free will, even with some loss to the
object, than to attempt to make men mere machines and instruments of a political
benevolence. The world on the whole will gain by a liberty without which virtue
cannot exist.
When once the commonwealth has established the estates of the church as property,
it can, consistently, hear nothing of the more or the less. "Too much"
and "too little" are treason against property. What evil can arise
from the quantity in any hand whilst the supreme authority has the full, sovereign
superintendence over this, as over all property, to prevent every species of
abuse, and, whenever it notably deviates, to give to it a direction agreeable
to the purposes of its institution?
In England most of us conceive that it is envy and malignity toward those who
are often the beginners of their own fortune, and not a love of the self-denial
and mortification of the ancient church, that makes some look askance at the
distinctions, and honors, and revenues which, taken from no person, are set
apart for virtue. The ears of the people of England are distinguishing. They
hear these men speak broad. Their tongue betrays them. Their language is in
the patois of fraud, in the cant and gibberish of hypocrisy. The people of England
must think so when these praters affect to carry back the clergy to that primitive,
evangelic poverty which, in the spirit, ought always to exist in them (and in
us, too, however we may like it), but in the thing must be varied when the relation
of that body to the state is altered — when manners, when modes of life,
when indeed the whole order of human affairs has undergone a total revolution.
We shall believe those reformers, then, to be honest enthusiasts, not, as now
we think them, cheats and deceivers, when we see them throwing their own goods
into common and submitting their own persons to the austere discipline of the
early church.
With these ideas rooted in their minds, the commons of Great Britain, in the
national emergencies, will never seek their resource from the confiscation of
the estates of the church and poor. Sacrilege and proscription are not among
the ways and means of our committee of supply. The Jews in Change Alley have
not yet dared to hint their hopes of a mortgage on the revenues belonging to
the see of Canterbury. I am not afraid that I shall be disavowed when I assure
you that there is not one public man in this kingdom whom you would wish to
quote, no, not one, of any party or description, who does not reprobate the
dishonest, perfidious, and cruel confiscation which the National Assembly has
been compelled to make of that property which it was their first duty to protect.
It is with the exultation of a little national pride I tell you that those amongst
us who have wished to pledge the societies of Paris in the cup of their abominations
have been disappointed. The robbery of your church has proved a security to
the possession of ours. It has roused the people. They see with horror and alarm
that enormous and shameless act of proscription. It has opened, and will more
and more open, their eyes upon the selfish enlargement of mind and the narrow
liberality of sentiment of insidious men, which, commencing in close hypocrisy
and fraud, have ended in open violence and rapine. At home we behold similar
beginnings. We are on our guard against similar conclusions.
I HOPE WE SHALL NEVER be so totally lost to all sense of the duties imposed
upon us by the law of social union as, upon any pretext of public service, to
confiscate the goods of a single unoffending citizen. Who but a tyrant (a name
expressive of everything which can vitiate and degrade human nature) could think
of seizing on the property of men unaccused, unheard, untried, by whole descriptions,
by hundreds and thousands together? Who that had not lost every trace of humanity
could think of casting down men of exalted rank and sacred function, some of
them of an age to call at once for reverence and compassion, of casting them
down from the highest situation in the commonwealth, wherein they were maintained
by their own landed property, to a state of indigence, depression, and contempt?
The confiscators truly have made some allowance to their victims from the scraps
and fragments of their own tables from which they have been so harshly driven,
and which have been so bountifully spread for a feast to the harpies of usury.
But to drive men from independence to live on alms is itself great cruelty.
That which might be a tolerable condition to men in one state of life, and not
habituated to other things, may, when all these circumstances are altered, be
a dreadful revolution, and one to which a virtuous mind would feel pain in condemning
any guilt except that which would demand the life of the offender. But to many
minds this punishment of degradation and infamy is worse than death. Undoubtedly
it is an infinite aggravation of this cruel suffering that the persons who were
taught a double prejudice in favor of religion, by education and by the place
they held in the administration of its functions, are to receive the remnants
of their property as alms from the profane and impious hands of those who had
plundered them of all the rest; to receive (if they are at all to receive),
not from the charitable contributions of the faithful but from the insolent
tenderness of known and avowed atheism, the maintenance of religion measured
out to them on the standard of the contempt in which it is held, and for the
purpose of rendering those who receive the allowance vile and of no estimation
in the eyes of mankind.
But this act of seizure of property, it seems, is a judgment in law, and not
a confiscation. They have, it seems, found out in the academies of the Palais
Royal and the Jacobins that certain men had no right to the possessions which
they held under law, usage, the decisions of courts, and the accumulated prescription
of a thousand years. They say that ecclesiastics are fictitious persons, creatures
of the state, whom at pleasure they may destroy, and of course limit and modify
in every particular; that the goods they possess are not properly theirs but
belong to the state which created the fiction; and we are therefore not to trouble
ourselves with what they may suffer in their natural feelings and natural persons
on account of what is done toward them in this their constructive character.
Of what import is it under what names you injure men and deprive them of the
just emoluments of a profession, in which they were not only permitted but encouraged
by the state to engage, and upon the supposed certainty of which emoluments
they had formed the plan of their lives, contracted debts, and led multitudes
to an entire dependence upon them?
You do not imagine, Sir, that I am going to compliment this miserable distinction
of persons with any long discussion. The arguments of tyranny are as contemptible
as its force is dreadful. Had not your confiscators, by their early crimes,
obtained a power which secures indemnity to all the crimes of which they have
since been guilty or that they can commit, it is not the syllogism of the logician,
but the lash of the executioner, that would have refuted a sophistry which becomes
an accomplice of theft and murder. The sophistic tyrants of Paris are loud in
their declamations against the departed regal tyrants, who in former ages have
vexed the world. They are thus bold, because they are safe from the dungeons
and iron cages of their old masters. Shall we be more tender of the tyrants
of our own time, when we see them acting worse tragedies under our eyes? Shall
we not use the same liberty that they do, when we can use it with the same safety
— when to speak honest truth only requires a contempt of the opinions
of those whose actions we abhor?
This outrage on all the rights of property was at first covered with what, on
the system of their conduct, was the most astonishing of all pretexts —
a regard to national faith. The enemies to property at first pretended a most
tender, delicate, and scrupulous anxiety for keeping the king's engagements
with the public creditor. These professors of the rights of men are so busy
in teaching others that they have not leisure to learn anything themselves;
otherwise they would have known that it is to the property of the citizen, and
not to the demands of the creditor of the state, that the first and original
faith of civil society is pledged. The claim of the citizen is prior in time,
paramount in title, superior in equity. The fortunes of individuals, whether
possessed by acquisition or by descent or in virtue of a participation in the
goods of some community, were no part of the creditor's security, expressed
or implied. They never so much as entered into his head when he made his bargain.
He well knew that the public, whether represented by a monarch or by a senate,
can pledge nothing but the public estate; and it can have no public estate except
in what it derives from a just and proportioned imposition upon the citizens
at large. This was engaged, and nothing else could be engaged, to the public
creditor. No man can mortgage his injustice as a pawn for his fidelity.
It is impossible to avoid some observation on the contradictions caused by the
extreme rigor and the extreme laxity of this new public faith which influenced
in this transaction, and which influenced not according to the nature of the
obligation, but to the description of the persons to whom it was engaged. No
acts of the old government of the kings of France are held valid in the National
Assembly except its pecuniary engagements: acts of all others of the most ambiguous
legality. The rest of the acts of that royal government are considered in so
odious a light that to have a claim under its authority is looked on as a sort
of crime. A pension, given as a reward for service to the state, is surely as
good a ground of property as any security for money advanced to the state. It
is better; for money is paid, and well paid, to obtain that service. We have,
however, seen multitudes of people under this description in France who never
had been deprived of their allowances by the most arbitrary ministers in the
most arbitrary times, by this assembly of the rights of men robbed without mercy.
They were told, in answer to their claim to the bread earned with their blood,
that their services had not been rendered to the country that now exists.
This laxity of public faith is not confined to those unfortunate persons. The
Assembly, with perfect consistency it must be owned, is engaged in a respectable
deliberation how far it is bound by the treaties made with other nations under
the former government, and their committee is to report which of them they ought
to ratify, and which not. By this means they have put the external fidelity
of this virgin state on a par with its internal.
It is not easy to conceive upon what rational principle the royal government
should not, of the two, rather have possessed the power of rewarding service
and making treaties, in virtue of its prerogative, than that of pledging to
creditors the revenue of the state, actual and possible. The treasure of the
nation, of all things, has been the least allowed to the prerogative of the
king of France or to the prerogative of any king in Europe. To mortgage the
public revenue implies the sovereign dominion, in the fullest sense, over the
public purse. It goes far beyond the trust even of a temporary and occasional
taxation. The acts, however, of that dangerous power (the distinctive mark of
a boundless despotism) have been alone held sacred. Whence arose this preference
given by a democratic assembly to a body of property deriving its title from
the most critical and obnoxious of all the exertions of monarchical authority?
Reason can furnish nothing to reconcile inconsistency, nor can partial favor
be accounted for upon equitable principles. But the contradiction and partiality
which admit no justification are not the less without an adequate cause; and
that cause I do not think it difficult to discover.
By the vast debt of France a great monied interest had insensibly grown up,
and with it a great power. By the ancient usages which prevailed in that kingdom,
the general circulation of property, and in particular the mutual convertibility
of land into money, and of money into land, had always been a matter of difficulty.
Family settlements, rather more general and more strict than they are in England,
the jus retractus, the great mass of landed property held by the crown, and,
by a maxim of the French law, held unalienably, the vast estates of the ecclesiastical
corporations — all these had kept the landed and monied interests more
separated in France, less miscible, and the owners of the two distinct species
of property not so well disposed to each other as they are in this country.
The monied property was long looked on with rather an evil eye by the people.
They saw it connected with their distresses, and aggravating them. It was no
less envied by the old landed interests, partly for the same reasons that rendered
it obnoxious to the people, but much more so as it eclipsed, by the splendor
of an ostentatious luxury, the unendowed pedigrees and naked titles of several
among the nobility. Even when the nobility which represented the more permanent
landed interest united themselves by marriage (which sometimes was the case)
with the other description, the wealth which saved the family from ruin was
supposed to contaminate and degrade it. Thus the enmities and heartburnings
of these parties were increased even by the usual means by which discord is
made to cease and quarrels are turned into friendship. In the meantime, the
pride of the wealthy men, not noble or newly noble, increased with its cause.
They felt with resentment an inferiority, the grounds of which they did not
acknowledge. There was no measure to which they were not willing to lend themselves
in order to be revenged of the outrages of this rival pride and to exalt their
wealth to what they considered as its natural rank and estimation. They struck
at the nobility through the crown and the church. They attacked them particularly
on the side on which they thought them the most vulnerable, that is, the possessions
of the church, which, through the patronage of the crown, generally devolved
upon the nobility.
The bishoprics and the great commendatory abbeys were, with few exceptions,
held by that order.
In this state of real, though not always perceived, warfare between the noble
ancient landed interest and the new monied interest, the greatest, because the
most applicable, strength was in the hands of the latter. The monied interest
is in its nature more ready for any adventure, and its possessors more disposed
to new enterprises of any kind. Being of a recent acquisition, it falls in more
naturally with any novelties. It is therefore the kind of wealth which will
be resorted to by all who wish for change.
Along with the monied interest, a new description of men had grown up with whom
that interest soon formed a close and marked union — I mean the political
men of letters. Men of letters, fond of distinguishing themselves, are rarely
averse to innovation. Since the decline of the life and greatness of Louis the
Fourteenth, they were not so much cultivated, either by him or by the regent
or the successors to the crown, nor were they engaged to the court by favors
and emoluments so systematically as during the splendid period of that ostentatious
and not impolitic reign. What they lost in the old court protection, they endeavored
to make up by joining in a sort of incorporation of their own; to which the
two academies of France, and afterwards the vast undertaking of the Encyclopedia,
carried on by a society of these gentlemen, did not a little contribute.
The literary cabal had some years ago formed something like a regular plan for
the destruction of the Christian religion. This object they pursued with a degree
of zeal which hitherto had been discovered only in the propagators of some system
of piety. They were possessed with a spirit of proselytism in the most fanatical
degree; and from thence, by an easy progress, with the spirit of persecution
according to their means.[22] What was not to be done toward their great end
by any direct or immediate act might be wrought by a longer process through
the medium of opinion. To command that opinion, the first step is to establish
a dominion over those who direct it. They contrived to possess themselves, with
great method and perseverance, of all the avenues to literary fame. Many of
them indeed stood high in the ranks of literature and science. The world had
done them justice and in favor of general talents forgave the evil tendency
of their peculiar principles. This was true liberality, which they returned
by endeavoring to confine the reputation of sense, learning, and taste to themselves
or their followers. I will venture to say that this narrow, exclusive spirit
has not been less prejudicial to literature and to taste than to morals and
true philosophy. These atheistical fathers have a bigotry of their own, and
they have learned to talk against monks with the spirit of a monk. But in some
things they are men of the world. The resources of intrigue are called in to
supply the defects of argument and wit. To this system of literary monopoly
was joined an unremitting industry to blacken and discredit in every way, and
by every means, all those who did not hold to their faction. To those who have
observed the spirit of their conduct it has long been clear that nothing was
wanted but the power of carrying the intolerance of the tongue and of the pen
into a persecution which would strike at property, liberty, and life.
The desultory and faint persecution carried on against them, more from compliance
with form and decency than with serious resentment, neither weakened their strength
nor relaxed their efforts. The issue of the whole was that, what with opposition,
and what with success, a violent and malignant zeal, of a kind hitherto unknown
in the world, had taken an entire possession of their minds and rendered their
whole conversation, which otherwise would have been pleasing and instructive,
perfectly disgusting. A spirit of cabal, intrigue, and proselytism pervaded
all their thoughts, words, and actions. And as controversial zeal soon turns
its thoughts on force, they began to insinuate themselves into a correspondence
with foreign princes, in hopes through their authority, which at first they
flattered, they might bring about the changes they had in view. To them it was
indifferent whether these changes were to be accomplished by the thunderbolt
of despotism or by the earthquake of popular commotion. The correspondence between
this cabal and the late king of Prussia will throw no small light upon the spirit
of all their proceedings.[23] For the same purpose for which they intrigued
with princes, they cultivated, in a distinguished manner, the monied interest
of France; and partly through the means furnished by those whose peculiar offices
gave them the most extensive and certain means of communication, they carefully
occupied all the avenues to opinion.
Writers, especially when they act in a body and with one direction, have great
influence on the public mind; the alliance, therefore, of these writers with
the monied interest[24] had no small effect in removing the popular odium and
envy which attended that species of wealth. These writers, like the propagators
of all novelties, pretended to a great zeal for the poor and the lower orders,
whilst in their satires they rendered hateful, by every exaggeration, the faults
of courts, of nobility, and of priesthood. They became a sort of demagogues.
They served as a link to unite, in favor of one object, obnoxious wealth to
restless and desperate poverty.
As these two kinds of men appear principal leaders in all the late transactions,
their junction and politics will serve to account, not upon any principles of
law or of policy, but as a cause, for the general fury with which all the landed
property of ecclesiastical corporations has been attacked; and the great care
which, contrary to their pretended principles, has been taken of a monied interest
originating from the authority of the crown. All the envy against wealth and
power was artificially directed against other descriptions of riches. On what
other principle than that which I have stated can we account for an appearance
so extraordinary and unnatural as that of the ecclesiastical possessions, which
had stood so many successions of ages and shocks of civil violences, and were
girded at once by justice and by prejudice, being applied to the payment of
debts comparatively recent, invidious, and contracted by a decried and subverted
government?
WAS the public estate a sufficient stake for the public debts? Assume that it
was not, and that a loss must be incurred somewhere. — When the only estate
lawfully possessed, and which the contracting parties had in contemplation at
the time in which their bargain was made, happens to fail, who according to
the principles of natural and legal equity ought to be the sufferer? Certainly
it ought to be either the party who trusted or the party who persuaded him to
trust, or both, and not third parties who had no concern with the transaction.
Upon any insolvency they ought to suffer who are weak enough to lend upon bad
security, or they who fraudulently held out a security that was not valid. Laws
are acquainted with no other rules of decision. But by the new institute of
the rights of men, the only persons who in equity ought to suffer are the only
persons who are to be saved harmless: those are to answer the debt who neither
were lenders nor borrowers, mortgagers nor mortgagees.
What had the clergy to do with these transactions? What had they to do with
any public engagement further than the extent of their own debt? To that, to
be sure, their estates were bound to the last acre. Nothing can lead more to
the true spirit of the Assembly, which sits for public confiscation, with its
new equity and its new morality, than an attention to their proceeding with
regard to this debt of the clergy. The body of confiscators, true to that monied
interest for which they were false to every other, have found the clergy competent
to incur a legal debt. Of course, they declared them legally entitled to the
property which their power of incurring the debt and mortgaging the estate implied,
recognizing the rights of those persecuted citizens in the very act in which
they were thus grossly violated.
If, as I said, any persons are to make good deficiencies to the public creditor,
besides the public at large, they must be those who managed the agreement. Why,
therefore, are not the estates of all the comptrollers-general confiscated?[25]
Why not those of the long succession of ministers, financiers, and bankers who
have been enriched whilst the nation was impoverished by their dealings and
their counsels? Why is not the estate of M. Laborde declared forfeited rather
than of the archbishop of Paris, who has had nothing to do in the creation or
in the jobbing of the public funds? Or, if you must confiscate old landed estates
in favor of the money-jobbers, why is the penalty confined to one description?
I do not know whether the expenses of the Duke de Choiseul have left anything
of the infinite sums which he had derived from the bounty of his master during
the transactions of a reign which contributed largely by every species of prodigality
in war and peace to the present debt of France. If any such remains, why is
not this confiscated? I remember to have been in Paris during the time of the
old government. I was there just after the Duke d'Aiguillon had been snatched
(as it was generally thought) from the block by the hand of a protecting despotism.
He was a minister and had some concern in the affairs of that prodigal period.
Why do I not see his estate delivered up to the municipalities in which it is
situated? The noble family of Noailles have long been servants (meritorious
servants I admit) to the crown of France, and have had, of course, some share
in its bounties. Why do I hear nothing of the application of their estates to
the public debt? Why is the estate of the Duke de Rochefoucault more sacred
than that of the Cardinal de Rochefoucault? The former is, I doubt not, a worthy
person, and (if it were not a sort of profaneness to talk of the use, as affecting
the title to the property) he makes a good use of his revenues; but it is no
disrespect to him to say, what authentic information well warrants me in saying,
that the use made of a property equally valid by his brother, [26](2) the cardinal
archbishop of Rouen, was far more laudable and far more public-spirited. Can
one hear of the proscription of such persons and the confiscation of their effects
without indignation and horror? He is not a man who does not feel such emotions
on such occasions. He does not deserve the name of a freeman who will not express
them.
Few barbarous conquerors have ever made so terrible a revolution in property.
None of the heads of the Roman factions, when they established crudelem illam
hastam in all their auctions of rapine, have ever set up to sale the goods of
the conquered citizen to such an enormous amount. It must be allowed in favor
of those tyrants of antiquity that what was done by them could hardly be said
to be done in cold blood. Their passions were inflamed, their tempers soured,
their understandings confused with the spirit of revenge, with the innumerable
reciprocated and recent inflictions and retaliations of blood and rapine. They
were driven beyond all bounds of moderation by the apprehension of the return
of power, with the return of property, to the families of those they had injured
beyond all hope of forgiveness.
These Roman confiscators, who were yet only in the elements of tyranny, and
were not instructed in the rights of men to exercise all sorts of cruelties
on each other without provocation, thought it necessary to spread a sort of
color over their injustice.
They considered the vanquished party as composed of traitors who had borne arms,
or otherwise had acted with hostility, against the commonwealth. They regarded
them as persons who had forfeited their property by their crimes. With you,
in your improved state of the human mind, there was no such formality. You seized
upon five millions sterling of annual rent and turned forty or fifty thousand
human creatures out of their houses, because "such was your pleasure".
The tyrant Harry the Eighth of England, as he was not better enlightened than
the Roman Mariuses and Sullas, and had not studied in your new schools, did
not know what an effectual instrument of despotism was to be found in that grand
magazine of offensive weapons, the rights of men. When he resolved to rob the
abbeys, as the club of the Jacobins have robbed all the ecclesiastics, he began
by setting on foot a commission to examine into the crimes and abuses which
prevailed in those communities. As it might be expected, his commission reported
truths, exaggerations, and falsehoods. But truly or falsely, it reported abuses
and offenses. However, as abuses might be corrected, as every crime of persons
does not infer a forfeiture with regard to communities, and as property, in
that dark age, was not discovered to be a creature of prejudice, all those abuses
(and there were enough of them) were hardly thought sufficient ground for such
a confiscation as it was for his purpose to make. He, therefore, procured the
formal surrender of these estates. All these operose proceedings were adopted
by one of the most decided tyrants in the rolls of history as necessary preliminaries
before he could venture, by bribing the members of his two servile houses with
a share of the spoil and holding out to them an eternal immunity from taxation,
to demand a confirmation of his iniquitous proceedings by an act of Parliament.
Had fate reserved him to our times, four technical terms would have done his
business and saved him all this trouble; he needed nothing more than one short
form of incantation — "Philosophy, Light, Liberality, the Rights
of Men".
I can say nothing in praise of those acts of tyranny which no voice has hitherto
ever commended under any of their false colors, yet in these false colors an
homage was paid by despotism to justice. The power which was above all fear
and all remorse was not set above all shame. Whilst shame keeps its watch, virtue
is not wholly extinguished in the heart, nor will moderation be utterly exiled
from the minds of tyrants.
I believe every honest man sympathizes in his reflections with our political
poet on that occasion, and will pray to avert the omen whenever these acts of
rapacious despotism present themselves to his view or his imagination: —
May no such storm
Fall on our times, where ruin must reform.
Tell me (my Muse) what monstrous dire offense,
What crimes could any Christian king incense
To such a rage? Was't luxury, or lust?
Was he so temperate, so chaste, so just?
Were these their crimes? they were his own much more,
But wealth is crime enough to him that's poor.[27]
This same wealth, which is at all times treason and lese nation to indigent
and rapacious despotism, under all modes of polity, was your temptation to violate
property, law, and religion, united in one object. But was the state of France
so wretched and undone that no other recourse but rapine remained to preserve
its existence? On this point I wish to receive some information. When the states
met, was the condition of the finances of France such that, after economizing
on principles of justice and mercy through all departments, no fair repartition
of burdens upon all the orders could possibly restore them? If such an equal
imposition would have been sufficient, you well know it might easily have been
made. M. Necker, in the budget which he laid before the orders assembled at
Versailles, made a detailed exposition of the state of the French nation.[28]
If we give credit to him, it was not necessary to have recourse to any new impositions
whatsoever to put the receipts of France on a balance with its expenses. He
stated the permanent charges of all descriptions, including the interest of
a new loan of four hundred millions, at 531,444,000 livres; the fixed revenue
at 475,294,000, making the deficiency 56,150,000, or short of £2,200,000
sterling. But to balance it, he brought forward savings and improvements of
revenue (considered as entirely certain) to rather more than the amount of that
deficiency; and he concludes with these emphatical words (p. 39), "Quel
pays, Messieurs, que celui, ou, sans impots et avec de simples objets inappercus,
on peut faire disparoitre un deficit qui a fait tant de bruit en Europe".
As to the reimbursement, the sinking of debt, and the other great objects of
public credit and political arrangement indicated in Mons. Necker's speech,
no doubt could be entertained but that a very moderate and proportioned assessment
on the citizens without distinction would have provided for all of them to the
fullest extent of their demand.
If this representation of Mons. Necker was false, then the Assembly are in the
highest degree culpable for having forced the king to accept as his minister
and, since the king's deposition, for having employed as their minister a man
who had been capable of abusing so notoriously the confidence of his master
and their own, in a matter, too, of the highest moment and directly appertaining
to his particular office. But if the representation was exact (as having always,
along with you, conceived a high degree of respect for M. Necker, I make no
doubt it was), then what can be said in favor of those who, instead of moderate,
reasonable, and general contribution, have in cold blood, and impelled by no
necessity, had recourse to a partial and cruel confiscation?
Was that contribution refused on a pretext of privilege, either on the part
of the clergy or on that of the nobility? No, certainly. As to the clergy, they
even ran before the wishes of the third order. Previous to the meeting of the
states, they had in all their instructions expressly directed their deputies
to renounce every immunity which put them upon a footing distinct from the condition
of their fellow subjects. In this renunciation the clergy were even more explicit
than the nobility.
But let us suppose that the deficiency had remained at the fifty-six millions
(or £2,200,000 sterling), as at first stated by M. Necker. Let us allow
that all the resources he opposed to that deficiency were impudent and groundless
fictions, and that the Assembly (or their lords of articles [29] at the Jacobins)
were from thence justified in laying the whole burden of that deficiency on
the clergy — yet allowing all this, a necessity of £2,200,000 sterling
will not support a confiscation to the amount of five millions. The imposition
of £2,200,000 on the clergy, as partial, would have been oppressive and
unjust, but it would not have been altogether ruinous to those on whom it was
imposed, and therefore it would not have answered the real purpose of the managers.
Perhaps persons unacquainted with the state of France, on hearing the clergy
and the noblesse were privileged in point of taxation, may be led to imagine
that, previous to the Revolution, these bodies had contributed nothing to the
state. This is a great mistake. They certainly did not contribute equally with
each other, nor either of them equally with the commons. They both, however,
contributed largely. Neither nobility nor clergy enjoyed any exemption from
the excise on consumable commodities, from duties of custom, or from any of
the other numerous indirect impositions, which in France, as well as here, make
so very large a proportion of all payments to the public. The noblesse paid
the capitation. They paid also a land-tax, called the twentieth penny, to the
height sometimes of three, sometimes of four, shillings in the pound —
both of them direct impositions of no light nature and no trivial produce. The
clergy of the provinces annexed by conquest to France (which in extent make
about an eighth part of the whole, but in wealth a much larger proportion) paid
likewise to the capitation and the twentieth penny, at the rate paid by the
nobility. The clergy in the old provinces did not pay the capitation, but they
had redeemed themselves at the expense of about 24 millions, or a little more
than a million sterling. They were exempted from the twentieths; but then they
made free gifts, they contracted debts for the state, and they were subject
to some other charges, the whole computed at about a thirteenth part of their
clear income. They ought to have paid annually about forty thousand pounds more
to put them on a par with the contribution of the nobility.
When the terrors of this tremendous proscription hung over the clergy, they
made an offer of a contribution through the archbishop of Aix, which, for its
extravagance, ought not to have been accepted. But it was evidently and obviously
more advantageous to the public creditor than anything which could rationally
be promised by the confiscation. Why was it not accepted? The reason is plain:
there was no desire that the church should be brought to serve the state. The
service of the state was made a pretext to destroy the church. In their way
to the destruction of the church they would not scruple to destroy their country;
and they have destroyed it. One great end in the project would have been defeated
if the plan of extortion had been adopted in lieu of the scheme of confiscation.
The new landed interest connected with the new republic, and connected with
it for its very being, could not have been created. This was among the reasons
why that extravagant ransom was not accepted.
THE madness of the project of confiscation, on the plan that was first pretended,
soon became apparent. To bring this unwieldy mass of landed property, enlarged
by the confiscation of all the vast landed domain of the crown, at once into
market was obviously to defeat the profits proposed by the confiscation by depreciating
the value of those lands and, indeed, of all the landed estates throughout France.
Such a sudden diversion of all its circulating money from trade to land must
be an additional mischief What step was taken? Did the Assembly, on becoming
sensible of the inevitable ill effects of their projected sale, revert to the
offers of the clergy? No distress could oblige them to travel in a course which
was disgraced by any appearance of justice. Giving over all hopes from a general
immediate sale, another project seems to have succeeded. They proposed to take
stock in exchange for the church lands. In that project great difficulties arose
in equalizing the objects to be exchanged. Other obstacles also presented themselves,
which threw them back again upon some project of sale. The municipalities had
taken an alarm. They would not hear of transferring the whole plunder of the
kingdom to the stockholders in Paris. Many of those municipalities had been
(upon system) reduced to the most deplorable indigence. Money was nowhere to
be seen. They were, therefore, led to the point that was so ardently desired.
They panted for a currency of any kind which might revive their perishing industry.
The municipalities were then to be admitted to a share in the spoil, which evidently
rendered the first scheme (if ever it had been seriously entertained) altogether
impracticable. Public exigencies pressed upon all sides. The minister of finance
reiterated his call for supply with a most urgent, anxious, and boding voice.
Thus pressed on all sides, instead of the first plan of converting their bankers
into bishops and abbots, instead of paying the old debt, they contracted a new
debt at 3 per cent, creating a new paper currency founded on an eventual sale
of the church lands. They issued this paper currency to satisfy in the first
instance chiefly the demands made upon them by the bank of discount, the great
machine, or paper-mill, of their fictitious wealth.
The spoil of the church was now become the only resource of all their operations
in finance, the vital principle of all their politics, the sole security for
the existence of their power. It was necessary by all, even the most violent
means, to put every individual on the same bottom, and to bind the nation in
one guilty interest to uphold this act and the authority of those by whom it
was done. In order to force the most reluctant into a participation of their
pillage, they rendered their paper circulation compulsory in all payments. Those
who consider the general tendency of their schemes to this one object as a center,
and a center from which afterwards all their measures radiate, will not think
that I dwell too long upon this part of the proceedings of the National Assembly.
To cut off all appearance of connection between the crown and public justice,
and to bring the whole under implicit obedience to the dictators in Paris, the
old independent judicature of the parliaments, with all its merits and all its
faults, was wholly abolished. Whilst the parliaments existed, it was evident
that the people might some time or other come to resort to them and rally under
the standard of their ancient laws. It became, however, a matter of consideration
that the magistrates and officers, in the courts now abolished, had purchased
their places at a very high rate, for which, as well as for the duty they performed,
they received but a very low return of interest. Simple confiscation is a boon
only for the clergy; to the lawyers some appearances of equity are to be observed,
and they are to receive compensation to an immense amount. Their compensation
becomes part of the national debt, for the liquidation of which there is the
one exhaustless fund. The lawyers are to obtain their compensation in the new
church paper, which is to march with the new principles of judicature and legislature.
The dismissed magistrates are to take their share of martyrdom with the ecclesiastics,
or to receive their own property from such a fund, and in such a manner, as
all those who have been seasoned with the ancient principles of jurisprudence
and had been the sworn guardians of property must look upon with horror. Even
the clergy are to receive their miserable allowance out of the depreciated paper,
which is stamped with the indelible character of sacrilege and with the symbols
of their own ruin, or they must starve. So violent an outrage upon credit, property,
and liberty as this compulsory paper currency has seldom been exhibited by the
alliance of bankruptcy and tyranny, at any time or in any nation.
In the course of all these operations, at length comes out the grand arcanum
— that in reality, and in a fair sense, the lands of the church (so far
as anything certain can be gathered from their proceedings) are not to be sold
at all. By the late resolutions of the National Assembly, they are, indeed,
to be delivered to the highest bidder. But it is to be observed that a certain
portion only of the purchase money is to be laid down. A period of twelve years
is to be given for the payment of the rest. The philosophic purchasers are therefore,
on payment of a sort of fine, to be put instantly into possession of the estate.
It becomes in some respects a sort of gift to them — to be held on the
feudal tenure of zeal to the new establishment. This project is evidently to
let in a body of purchasers without money. The consequence will be that these
purchasers, or rather grantees, will pay, not only from the rents as they accrue,
which might as well be received by the state, but from the spoil of the materials
of buildings, from waste in woods, and from whatever money, by hands habituated
to the gripings of usury, they can wring from the miserable peasant. He is to
be delivered over to the mercenary and arbitrary discretion of men who will
be stimulated to every species of extortion by the growing demands on the growing
profits of an estate held under the precarious settlement of a new political
system.
When all the frauds, impostures, violences, rapines, burnings, murders, confiscations,
compulsory paper currencies, and every description of tyranny and cruelty employed
to bring about and to uphold this Revolution have their natural effect, that
is, to shock the moral sentiments of all virtuous and sober minds, the abettors
of this philosophic system immediately strain their throats in a declamation
against the old monarchical government of France. When they have rendered that
deposed power sufficiently black, they then proceed in argument as if all those
who disapprove of their new abuses must of course be partisans of the old, that
those who reprobate their crude and violent schemes of liberty ought to be treated
as advocates for servitude. I admit that their necessities do compel them to
this base and contemptible fraud. Nothing can reconcile men to their proceedings
and projects but the supposition that there is no third option between them
and some tyranny as odious as can be furnished by the records of history, or
by the invention of poets. This prattling of theirs hardly deserves the name
of sophistry. It is nothing but plain impudence. Have these gentlemen never
heard, in the whole circle of the worlds of theory and practice, of anything
between the despotism of the monarch and the despotism of the multitude? Have
they never heard of a monarchy directed by laws, controlled and balanced by
the great hereditary wealth and hereditary dignity of a nation, and both again
controlled by a judicious check from the reason and feeling of the people at
large acting by a suitable and permanent organ? Is it then impossible that a
man may be found who, without criminal ill intention or pitiable absurdity,
shall prefer such a mixed and tempered government to either of the extremes,
and who may repute that nation to be destitute of all wisdom and of all virtue
which, having in its choice to obtain such a government with ease, or rather
to confirm it when actually possessed, thought proper to commit a thousand crimes
and to subject their country to a thousand evils in order to avoid it? Is it
then a truth so universally acknowledged that a pure democracy is the only tolerable
form into which human society can be thrown, that a man is not permitted to
hesitate about its merits without the suspicion of being a friend to tyranny,
that is, of being a foe to mankind?
I do not know under what description to class the present ruling authority in
France. It affects to be a pure democracy, though I think it in a direct train
of becoming shortly a mischievous and ignoble oligarchy. But for the present
I admit it to be a contrivance of the nature and effect of what it pretends
to. I reprobate no form of government merely upon abstract principles. There
may be situations in which the purely democratic form will become necessary.
There may be some (very few, and very particularly circumstanced) where it would
be clearly desirable. This I do not take to be the case of France or of any
other great country. Until now, we have seen no examples of considerable democracies.
The ancients were better acquainted with them. Not being wholly unread in the
authors who had seen the most of those constitutions, and who best understood
them, I cannot help concurring with their opinion that an absolute democracy,
no more than absolute monarchy, is to be reckoned among the legitimate forms
of government. They think it rather the corruption and degeneracy than the sound
constitution of a republic. If I recollect rightly, Aristotle observes that
a democracy has many striking points of resemblance with a tyranny.[30] Of this
I am certain, that in a democracy the majority of the citizens is capable of
exercising the most cruel oppressions upon the minority whenever strong divisions
prevail in that kind of polity, as they often must; and that oppression of the
minority will extend to far greater numbers and will be carried on with much
greater fury than can almost ever be apprehended from the dominion of a single
scepter. In such a popular persecution, individual sufferers are in a much more
deplorable condition than in any other. Under a cruel prince they have the balmy
compassion of mankind to assuage the smart of their wounds; they have the plaudits
of the people to animate their generous constancy under their sufferings; but
those who are subjected to wrong under multitudes are deprived of all external
consolation. They seem deserted by mankind, overpowered by a conspiracy of their
whole species.
BUT ADMITTING DEMOCRACY not to have that inevitable tendency to party tyranny,
which I suppose it to have, and admitting it to possess as much good in it when
unmixed as I am sure it possesses when compounded with other forms, does monarchy,
on its part, contain nothing at all to recommend it? I do not often quote Bolingbroke,
nor have his works in general left any permanent impression on my mind. He is
a presumptuous and a superficial writer. But he has one observation which, in
my opinion, is not without depth and solidity. He says that he prefers a monarchy
to other governments because you can better ingraft any description of republic
on a monarchy than anything of monarchy upon the republican forms. I think him
perfectly in the right. The fact is so historically, and it agrees well with
the speculation.
I know how easy a topic it is to dwell on the faults of departed greatness.
By a revolution in the state, the fawning sycophant of yesterday is converted
into the austere critic of the present hour. But steady, independent minds,
when they have an object of so serious a concern to mankind as government under
their contemplation, will disdain to assume the part of satirists and declaimers.
They will judge of human institutions as they do of human characters. They will
sort out the good from the evil, which is mixed in mortal institutions, as it
is in mortal men.
YOUR government in France, though usually, and I think justly, reputed the best
of the unqualified or ill-qualified monarchies, was still full of abuses. These
abuses accumulated in a length of time, as they must accumulate in every monarchy
not under the constant inspection of a popular representative. I am no stranger
to the faults and defects of the subverted government of France, and I think
I am not inclined by nature or policy to make a panegyric upon anything which
is a just and natural object of censure. But the question is not now of the
vices of that monarchy, but of its existence. Is it, then, true that the French
government was such as to be incapable or undeserving of reform, so that it
was of absolute necessity that the whole fabric should be at once pulled down
and the area cleared for the erection of a theoretic, experimental edifice in
its place? All France was of a different opinion in the beginning of the year
1789. The instructions to the representatives to the States-General, from every
district in that kingdom, were filled with projects for the reformation of that
government without the remotest suggestion of a design to destroy it. Had such
a design been even insinuated, I believe there would have been but one voice,
and that voice for rejecting it with scorn and horror. Men have been sometimes
led by degrees, sometimes hurried, into things of which, if they could have
seen the whole together, they never would have permitted the most remote approach.
When those instructions were given, there was no question but that abuses existed,
and that they demanded a reform; nor is there now. In the interval between the
instructions and the revolution things changed their shape; and in consequence
of that change, the true question at present is, Whether those who would have
reformed or those who have destroyed are in the right?
To hear some men speak of the late monarchy of France, you would imagine that
they were talking of Persia bleeding under the ferocious sword of Tahmas Kouli
Khan, or at least describing the barbarous anarchic despotism of Turkey, where
the finest countries in the most genial climates in the world are wasted by
peace more than any countries have been worried by war, where arts are unknown,
where manufactures languish, where science is extinguished, where agriculture
decays, where the human race itself melts away and perishes under the eye of
the observer. Was this the case of France? I have no way of determining the
question but by reference to facts. Facts do not support this resemblance. Along
with much evil there is some good in monarchy itself, and some corrective to
its evil from religion, from laws, from manners, from opinions the French monarchy
must have received, which rendered it (though by no means a free, and therefore
by no means a good, constitution) a despotism rather in appearance than in reality.
AMONG the standards upon which the effects of government on any country are
to be estimated, I must consider the state of its population as not the least
certain. No country in which population flourishes and is in progressive improvement
can be under a very mischievous government. About sixty years ago, the Intendants
of the generalities of France made, with other matters, a report of the population
of their several districts. I have not the books, which are very voluminous,
by me, nor do I know where to procure them (I am obliged to speak by memory,
and therefore the less positively), but I think the population of France was
by them, even at that period, estimated at twenty-two millions of souls. At
the end of the last century it had been generally calculated at eighteen. On
either of these estimations, France was not ill peopled. M. Necker, who is an
authority for his own time, at least equal to the Intendants for theirs, reckons,
and upon apparently sure principles, the people of France in the year 1780 at
twenty-four millions six hundred and seventy thousand. But was this the probable
ultimate term under the old establishment? Dr. Price is of opinion that the
growth of population in France was by no means at its acme in that year. I certainly
defer to Dr. Price's authority a good deal more in these speculations than I
do in his general politics. This gentleman, taking ground on M. Necker's data,
is very confident that since the period of that minister's calculation the French
population has increased rapidly — so rapidly that in the year 1789 he
will not consent to rate the people of that kingdom at a lower number than thirty
millions. After abating much (and much I think ought to be abated) from the
sanguine calculation of Dr. Price, I have no doubt that the population of France
did increase considerably during this later period; but supposing that it increased
to nothing more than will be sufficient to complete the twenty-four millions
six hundred and seventy thousand to twenty-five millions, still a population
of twenty-five millions, and that in an increasing progress, on a space of about
twenty-seven thousand square leagues is immense. It is, for instance, a good
deal more than the proportionable population of this island, or even than that
of England, the best peopled part of the United Kingdom.
It is not universally true that France is a fertile country. Considerable tracts
of it are barren and labor under other natural disadvantages. In the portions
of that territory where things are more favorable, as far as I am able to discover,
the numbers of the people correspond to the indulgence of nature. [31] The Generality
of Lisle (this I admit is the strongest example) upon an extent of four hundred
and four leagues and a half, about ten years ago, contained seven hundred and
thirty-four thousand six hundred souls, which is one thousand seven hundred
and seventy-two inhabitants to each square league. The middle term for the rest
of France is about nine hundred inhabitants to the same admeasurement.
I do not attribute this population to the deposed government, because I do not
like to compliment the contrivances of men with what is due in a great degree
to the bounty of Providence. But that decried government could not have obstructed,
most probably it favored, the operation of those causes (whatever they were),
whether of nature in the soil or habits of industry among the people, which
has produced so large a number of the species throughout that whole kingdom
and exhibited in some particular places such prodigies of population. I never
will suppose that fabric of a state to be the worst of all political institutions
which, by experience, is found to contain a principle favorable (however latent
it may be) to the increase of mankind.
The wealth of a country is another, and no contemptible, standard by which we
may judge whether, on the whole, a government be protecting or destructive.
France far exceeds England in the multitude of her people, but I apprehend that
her comparative wealth is much inferior to ours, that it is not so equal in
the distribution, nor so ready in the circulation. I believe the difference
in the form of the two governments to be amongst the causes of this advantage
on the side of England. I speak of England, not of the whole British dominions,
which, if compared with those of France, will, in some degree, weaken the comparative
rate of wealth upon our side. But that wealth, which will not endure a comparison
with the riches of England, may constitute a very respectable degree of opulence.
M. Necker's book, published in 1785,[32] contains an accurate and interesting
collection of facts relative to public economy and to political arithmetic;
and his speculations on the subject are in general wise and liberal. In that
work he gives an idea of the state of France very remote from the portrait of
a country whose government was a perfect grievance, an absolute evil, admitting
no cure but through the violent and uncertain remedy of a total revolution.
He affirms that from the year 1726 to the year 1784 there was coined at the
mint of France, in the species of gold and silver, to the amount of about one
hundred millions of pounds sterling.[33](2)
It is impossible that M. Necker should be mistaken in the amount of the bullion
which has been coined in the mint. It is a matter of official record. The reasonings
of this able financier, concerning the quantity of gold and silver which remained
for circulation, when he wrote in 1785, that is, about four years before the
deposition and imprisonment of the French king, are not of equal certainty,
but they are laid on grounds so apparently solid that it is not easy to refuse
a considerable degree of assent to his calculation. He calculates the numeraire,
or what we call "specie", then actually existing in France at about
eighty-eight millions of the same English money. A great accumulation of wealth
for one country, large as that country is! M. Necker was so far from considering
this influx of wealth as likely to cease, when he wrote in 1785, that he presumes
upon a future annual increase of two per cent upon the money brought into France
during the periods from which he computed.
Some adequate cause must have originally introduced all the money coined at
its mint into that kingdom, and some cause as operative must have kept at home,
or returned into its bosom, such a vast flood of treasure as M. Necker calculates
to remain for domestic circulation. Suppose any reasonable deductions from M.
Necker's computation, the remainder must still amount to an immense sum. Causes
thus powerful to acquire, and to retain, cannot be found in discouraged industry,
insecure property, and a positively destructive government. Indeed, when I consider
the face of the kingdom of France, the multitude and opulence of her cities,
the useful magnificence of her spacious high roads and bridges, the opportunity
of her artificial canals and navigations opening the conveniences of maritime
communication through a solid continent of so immense an extent; when I turn
my eyes to the stupendous works of her ports and harbors, and to her whole naval
apparatus, whether for war or trade; when I bring before my view the number
of her fortifications, constructed with so bold and masterly a skill and made
and maintained at so prodigious a charge, presenting an armed front and impenetrable
barrier to her enemies upon every side; when I recollect how very small a part
of that extensive region is without cultivation, and to what complete perfection
the culture of many of the best productions of the earth have been brought in
France; when I reflect on the excellence of her manufactures and fabrics, second
to none but ours, and in some particulars not second; when I contemplate the
grand foundations of charity, public and private; when I survey the state of
all the arts that beautify and polish life; when I reckon the men she has bred
for extending her fame in war, her able statesmen, the multitude of her profound
lawyers and theologians, her philosophers, her critics, her historians and antiquaries,
her poets and her orators, sacred and profane — I behold in all this something
which awes and commands the imagination, which checks the mind on the brink
of precipitate and indiscriminate censure, and which demands that we should
very seriously examine what and how great are the latent vices that could authorize
us at once to level so spacious a fabric with the ground. I do not recognize
in this view of things the despotism of Turkey. Nor do I discern the character
of a government that has been, on the whole, so oppressive or so corrupt or
so negligent as to be utterly unfit for all reformation. I must think such a
government well deserved to have its excellence heightened, its faults corrected,
and its capacities improved into a British constitution.
Whoever has examined into the proceedings of that deposed government for several
years back cannot fail to have observed, amidst the inconstancy and fluctuation
natural to courts, an earnest endeavor toward the prosperity and improvement
of the country; he must admit that it had long been employed, in some instances
wholly to remove, in many considerably to correct, the abusive practices and
usages that had prevailed in the state, and that even the unlimited power of
the sovereign over the persons of his subjects, inconsistent, as undoubtedly
it was, with law and liberty, had yet been every day growing more mitigated
in the exercise. So far from refusing itself to reformation, that government
was open, with a censurable degree of facility, to all sorts of projects and
projectors on the subject. Rather too much countenance was given to the spirit
of innovation, which soon was turned against those who fostered it, and ended
in their ruin. It is but cold, and no very flattering, justice to that fallen
monarchy to say that, for many years, it trespassed more by levity and want
of judgment in several of its schemes than from any defect in diligence or in
public spirit. To compare the government of France for the last fifteen or sixteen
years with wise and well-constituted establishments during that, or during any
period, is not to act with fairness. But if in point of prodigality in the expenditure
of money, or in point of rigor in the exercise of power, it be compared with
any of the former reigns, I believe candid judges will give little credit to
the good intentions of those who dwell perpetually on the donations to favorites,
or on the expenses of the court, or on the horrors of the Bastille in the reign
of Louis the Sixteenth.[34]
WHETHER the system, if it deserves such a name, now built on the ruins of that
ancient monarchy will be able to give a better account of the population and
wealth of the country which it has taken under its care, is a matter very doubtful.
Instead of improving by the change, I apprehend that a long series of years
must be told before it can recover in any degree the effects of this philosophic
revolution, and before the nation can be replaced on its former footing. If
Dr. Price should think fit, a few years hence, to favor us with an estimate
of the population of France, he will hardly be able to make up his tale of thirty
millions of souls, as computed in 1789, or the Assembly's computation of twenty-six
millions of that year, or even M. Necker's twenty-five millions in 1780. I hear
that there are considerable emigrations from France, and that many, quitting
that voluptuous climate and that seductive Circean liberty, have taken refuge
in the frozen regions, and under the British despotism, of Canada.
In the present disappearance of coin, no person could think it the same country
in which the present minister of the finances has been able to discover fourscore
millions sterling in specie. From its general aspect one would conclude that
it had been for some time past under the special direction of the learned academicians
of Laputa and Balnibarbi.[35] Already the population of Paris has so declined
that M. Necker stated to the National Assembly the provision to be made for
its subsistence at a fifth less than what had formerly been found requisite.[36](2)
It is said (and I have never heard it contradicted) that a hundred thousand
people are out of employment in that city, though it is become the seat of the
imprisoned court and National Assembly. Nothing, I am credibly informed, can
exceed the shocking and disgusting spectacle of mendicancy displayed in that
capital. Indeed the votes of the National Assembly leave no doubt of the fact.
They have lately appointed a standing committee of mendicancy.
They are contriving at once a vigorous police on this subject and, for the first
time, the imposition of a tax to maintain the poor, for whose present relief
great sums appear on the face of the public accounts of the year. [37](3) In
the meantime the leaders of the legislative clubs and coffee-houses are intoxicated
with admiration at their own wisdom and ability. They speak with the most sovereign
contempt of the rest of the world. They tell the people, to comfort them in
the rags with which they have clothed them, that they are a nation of philosophers;
and sometimes by all the arts of quackish parade, by show, tumult, and bustle,
sometimes by the alarms of plots and invasions, they attempt to drown the cries
of indigence and to divert the eyes of the observer from the ruin and wretchedness
of the state. A brave people will certainly prefer liberty accompanied with
a virtuous poverty to a depraved and wealthy servitude. But before the price
of comfort and opulence is paid, one ought to be pretty sure it is real liberty
which is purchased, and that she is to be purchased at no other price. I shall
always, however, consider that liberty as very equivocal in her appearance which
has not wisdom and justice for her companions and does not lead prosperity and
plenty in her train.
When I sent this book to the press, I entertained some doubt concerning the
nature and extent of the last article in the above accounts, which is only under
a general head, without any detail. Since then I have seen M. de Calonne's work.
I must think it a great loss to me that I had not that advantage earlier. M.
de Calonne thinks this article to be on account of general subsistence; but
as he is not able to comprehend how so great a loss as upwards of £1,661,000
sterling could be sustained on the difference between the price and the sale
of grain, he seems to attribute this enormous head of charge to secret expenses
of the Revolution. I cannot say anything positively on that subject. The reader
is capable of judging, by the aggregate of these immense charges, on the state
and condition of France; and the system of public economy adopted in that nation.
These articles of account produced no inquiry or discussion in the National
Assembly.
THE advocates for this Revolution, not satisfied with exaggerating the vices
of their ancient government, strike at the fame of their country itself by painting
almost all that could have attracted the attention of strangers, I mean their
nobility and their clergy, as objects of horror. If this were only a libel,
there had not been much in it. But it has practical consequences. Had your nobility
and gentry, who formed the great body of your landed men and the whole of your
military officers, resembled those of Germany at the period when the Hansetowns
were necessitated to confederate against the nobles in defense of their property;
had they been like the Orsini and Vitelli in Italy, who used to sally from their
fortified dens to rob the trader and traveller; had they been such as the Mamelukes
in Egypt or the Nayres on the coast of Malabar, I do admit that too critical
an inquiry might not be advisable into the means of freeing the world from such
a nuisance. The statues of Equity and Mercy might be veiled for a moment. The
tenderest minds, confounded with the dreadful exigency in which morality submits
to the suspension of its own rules in favor of its own principles, might turn
aside whilst fraud and violence were accomplishing the destruction of a pretended
nobility which disgraced, whilst it persecuted, human nature. The persons most
abhorrent from blood, and treason, and arbitrary confiscation might remain silent
spectators of this civil war between the vices.
But did the privileged nobility who met under the king's precept at Versailles,
in 1789, or their constituents, deserve to be looked on as the Nayres or Mamelukes
of this age, or as the Orsini and Vitelli of ancient times? If I had then asked
the question I should have passed for a madman. What have they since done that
they were to be driven into exile, that their persons should be hunted about,
mangled, and tortured, their families dispersed, their houses laid in ashes,
and that their order should be abolished and the memory of it, if possible,
extinguished by ordaining them to change the very names by which they were usually
known? Read their instructions to their representatives. They breathe the spirit
of liberty as warmly and they recommend reformation as strongly as any other
order. Their privileges relative to contribution were voluntarily surrendered,
as the king, from the beginning, surrendered all pretense to a right of taxation.
Upon a free constitution there was but one opinion in France. The absolute monarchy
was at an end. It breathed its last, without a groan, without struggle, without
convulsion. All the struggle, all the dissension arose afterwards upon the preference
of a despotic democracy to a government of reciprocal control. The triumph of
the victorious party was over the principles of a British constitution.
I have observed the affectation which for many years past has prevailed in Paris,
even to a degree perfectly childish, of idolizing the memory of your Henry the
Fourth. If anything could put one out of humor with that ornament to the kingly
character, it would be this overdone style of insidious panegyric. The persons
who have worked this engine the most busily are those who have ended their panegyrics
in dethroning his successor and descendant, a man as good-natured, at the least,
as Henry the Fourth, altogether as fond of his people, and who has done infinitely
more to correct the ancient vices of the state than that great monarch did,
or we are sure he ever meant to do. Well it is for his panegyrists that they
have not him to deal with. For Henry of Navarre was a resolute, active, and
politic prince. He possessed, indeed, great humanity and mildness, but a humanity
and mildness that never stood in the way of his interests. He never sought to
be loved without putting himself first in a condition to be feared. He used
soft language with determined conduct. He asserted and maintained his authority
in the gross, and distributed his acts of concession only in the detail. He
spent the income of his prerogative nobly, but he took care not to break in
upon the capital, never abandoning for a moment any of the claims which he made
under the fundamental laws, nor sparing to shed the blood of those who opposed
him, often in the field, sometimes upon the scaffold. Because he knew how to
make his virtues respected by the ungrateful, he has merited the praises of
those whom, if they had lived in his time, he would have shut up in the Bastille
and brought to punishment along with the regicides whom he hanged after he had
famished Paris into a surrender.
If these panegyrists are in earnest in their admiration of Henry the Fourth,
they must remember that they cannot think more highly of him than he did of
the noblesse of France, whose virtue, honor, courage, patriotism, and loyalty
were his constant theme.
But the nobility of France are degenerated since the days of Henry the Fourth.
This is possible. But it is more than I can believe to be true in any great
degree. I do not pretend to know France as correctly as some others, but I have
endeavored through my whole life to make myself acquainted with human nature,
otherwise I should be unfit to take even my humble part in the service of mankind.
In that study I could not pass by a vast portion of our nature as it appeared
modified in a country but twenty-four miles from the shore of this island. On
my best observation, compared with my best inquiries, I found your nobility
for the greater part composed of men of high spirit and of a delicate sense
of honor, both with regard to themselves individually and with regard to their
whole corps, over whom they kept, beyond what is common in other countries,
a censorial eye. They were tolerably well bred, very officious, humane, and
hospitable; in their conversation frank and open; with a good military tone,
and reasonably tinctured with literature, particularly of the authors in their
own language. Many had pretensions far above this description. I speak of those
who were generally met with.
As to their behavior to the inferior classes, they appeared to me to comport
themselves toward them with good nature and with something more nearly approaching
to familiarity than is generally practiced with us in the intercourse between
the higher and lower ranks of life. To strike any person, even in the most abject
condition, was a thing in a manner unknown and would be highly disgraceful.
Instances of other ill-treatment of the humble part of the community were rare;
and as to attacks made upon the property or the personal liberty of the commons,
I never heard of any whatsoever from them; nor, whilst the laws were in vigor
under the ancient government, would such tyranny in subjects have been permitted.
As men of landed estates, I had no fault to find with their conduct, though
much to reprehend and much to wish changed in many of the old tenures. Where
the letting of their land was by rent, I could not discover that their agreements
with their farmers were oppressive; nor when they were in partnership with the
farmer, as often was the case, have I heard that they had taken the lion's share.
The proportions seemed not inequitable. There might be exceptions, but certainly
they were exceptions only. I have no reason to believe that in these respects
the landed noblesse of France were worse than the landed gentry of this country,
certainly in no respect more vexatious than the landholders, not noble, of their
own nation. In cities the nobility had no manner of power, in the country very
little. You know, Sir, that much of the civil government, and the police in
the most essential parts, was not in the hands of that nobility which presents
itself first to our consideration. The revenue, the system and collection of
which were the most grievous parts of the French government, was not administered
by the men of the sword, nor were they answerable for the vices of its principle
or the vexations, where any such existed, in its management.
Denying, as I am well warranted to do, that the nobility had any considerable
share in the oppression of the people in cases in which real oppression existed,
I am ready to admit that they were not without considerable faults and errors.
A foolish imitation of the worst part of the manners of England, which impaired
their natural character without substituting in its place what, perhaps, they
meant to copy, has certainly rendered them worse than formerly they were. Habitual
dissoluteness of manners, continued beyond the pardonable period of life, was
more common amongst them than it is with us; and it reigned with the less hope
of remedy, though possibly with something of less mischief by being covered
with more exterior decorum. They countenanced too much that licentious philosophy
which has helped to bring on their ruin. There was another error amongst them
more fatal. Those of the commons who approached to or exceeded many of the nobility
in point of wealth were not fully admitted to the rank and estimation which
wealth, in reason and good policy, ought to bestow in every country, though
I think not equally with that of other nobility. The two kinds of aristocracy
were too punctiliously kept asunder, less so, however, than in Germany and some
other nations.
This separation, as I have already taken the liberty of suggesting to you, I
conceive to be one principal cause of the destruction of the old nobility. The
military, particularly, was too exclusively reserved for men of family. But,
after all, this was an error of opinion, which a conflicting opinion would have
rectified. A permanent assembly in which the commons had their share of power
would soon abolish whatever was too invidious and insulting in these distinctions,
and even the faults in the morals of the nobility would have been probably corrected
by the greater varieties of occupation and pursuit to which a constitution by
orders would have given rise.
All this violent cry against the nobility I take to be a mere work of art. To
be honored and even privileged by the laws, opinions, and inveterate usages
of our country, growing out of the prejudice of ages, has nothing to provoke
horror and indignation in any man. Even to be too tenacious of those privileges
is not absolutely a crime. The strong struggle in every individual to preserve
possession of what he has found to belong to him and to distinguish him is one
of the securities against injustice and despotism implanted in our nature. It
operates as an instinct to secure property and to preserve communities in a
settled state. What is there to shock in this? Nobility is a graceful ornament
to the civil order. It is the Corinthian capital of polished society. Omnes
boni nobilitati semper favemus, was the saying of a wise and good man. It is
indeed one sign of a liberal and benevolent mind to incline to it with some
sort of partial propensity. He feels no ennobling principle in his own heart
who wishes to level all the artificial institutions which have been adopted
for giving a body to opinion, and permanence to fugitive esteem. It is a sour,
malignant, envious disposition, without taste for the reality or for any image
or representation of virtue, that sees with joy the unmerited fall of what had
long flourished in splendor and in honor. I do not like to see anything destroyed,
any void produced in society, any ruin on the face of the land. It was, therefore,
with no disappointment or dissatisfaction that my inquiries and observations
did not present to me any incorrigible vices in the noblesse of France, or any
abuse which could not be removed by a reform very short of abolition. Your noblesse
did not deserve punishment; but to degrade is to punish.
IT WAS WITH THE SAME SATISFACTION I found that the result of my inquiry concerning
your clergy was not dissimilar. It is no soothing news to my ears that great
bodies of men are incurably corrupt. It is not with much credulity I listen
to any when they speak evil of those whom they are going to plunder. I rather
suspect that vices are feigned or exaggerated when profit is looked for in their
punishment. An enemy is a bad witness; a robber is a worse. Vices and abuses
there were undoubtedly in that order, and must be. It was an old establishment,
and not frequently revised. But I saw no crimes in the individuals that merited
confiscation of their substance, nor those cruel insults and degradations, and
that unnatural persecution which have been substituted in the place of meliorating
regulation.
If there had been any just cause for this new religious persecution, the atheistic
libellers, who act as trumpeters to animate the populace to plunder, do not
love anybody so much as not to dwell with complacency on the vices of the existing
clergy. This they have not done. They find themselves obliged to rake into the
histories of former ages (which they have ransacked with a malignant and profligate
industry) for every instance of oppression and persecution which has been made
by that body or in its favor in order to justify, upon very iniquitous, because
very illogical, principles of retaliation, their own persecutions and their
own cruelties. After destroying all other genealogies and family distinctions,
they invent a sort of pedigree of crimes. It is not very just to chastise men
for the offenses of their natural ancestors, but to take the fiction of ancestry
in a corporate succession as a ground for punishing men who have no relation
to guilty acts, except in names and general descriptions, is a sort of refinement
in injustice belonging to the philosophy of this enlightened age. The Assembly
punishes men, many, if not most, of whom abhor the violent conduct of ecclesiastics
in former times as much as their present persecutors can do, and who would be
as loud and as strong in the expression of that sense, if they were not well
aware of the purposes for which all this declamation is employed.
Corporate bodies are immortal for the good of the members, but not for their
punishment. Nations themselves are such corporations. As well might we in England
think of waging inexpiable war upon all Frenchmen for the evils which they have
brought upon us in the several periods of our mutual hostilities. You might,
on your part, think yourselves justified in falling upon all Englishmen on account
of the unparalleled calamities brought on the people of France by the unjust
invasions of our Henries and our Edwards. Indeed, we should be mutually justified
in this exterminatory war upon each other, full as much as you are in the unprovoked
persecution of your present countrymen, on account of the conduct of men of
the same name in other times.
We do not draw the moral lessons we might from history. On the contrary, without
care it may be used to vitiate our minds and to destroy our happiness. In history
a great volume is unrolled for our instruction, drawing the materials of future
wisdom from the past errors and infirmities of mankind. It may, in the perversion,
serve for a magazine furnishing offensive and defensive weapons for parties
in church and state, and supplying the means of keeping alive or reviving dissensions
and animosities, and adding fuel to civil fury. History consists for the greater
part of the miseries brought upon the world by pride, ambition, avarice, revenge,
lust, sedition, hypocrisy, ungoverned zeal, and all the train of disorderly
appetites which shake the public with the same
— troublous storms that toss
The private state, and render life unsweet.
These vices are the causes of those storms. Religion, morals, laws, prerogatives,
privileges, liberties, rights of men are the pretexts. The pretexts are always
found in some specious appearance of a real good. You would not secure men from
tyranny and sedition by rooting out of the mind the principles to which these
fraudulent pretexts apply? If you did, you would root out everything that is
valuable in the human breast. As these are the pretexts, so the ordinary actors
and instruments in great public evils are kings, priests, magistrates, senates,
parliaments, national assemblies, judges, and captains. You would not cure the
evil by resolving that there should be no more monarchs, nor ministers of state,
nor of the gospel; no interpreters of law; no general officers; no public councils.
You might change the names. The things in some shape must remain. A certain
quantum of power must always exist in the community in some hands and under
some appellation. Wise men will apply their remedies to vices, not to names;
to the causes of evil which are permanent, not to the occasional organs by which
they act, and the transitory modes in which they appear. Otherwise you will
be wise historically, a fool in practice. Seldom have two ages the same fashion
in their pretexts and the same modes of mischief. Wickedness is a little more
inventive. Whilst you are discussing fashion, the fashion is gone by. The very
same vice assumes a new body. The spirit transmigrates, and, far from losing
its principle of life by the change of its appearance, it is renovated in its
new organs with a fresh vigor of a juvenile activity. It walks abroad, it continues
its ravages, whilst you are gibbeting the carcass or demolishing the tomb. You
are terrifying yourselves with ghosts and apparitions, whilst your house is
the haunt of robbers. It is thus with all those who, attending only to the shell
and husk of history, think they are waging war with intolerance, pride, and
cruelty, whilst, under color of abhorring the ill principles of antiquated parties,
they are authorizing and feeding the same odious vices in different factions,
and perhaps in worse.
Your citizens of Paris formerly had lent themselves as the ready instruments
to slaughter the followers of Calvin, at the infamous massacre of St. Bartholomew.
What should we say to those who could think of retaliating on the Parisians
of this day the abominations and horrors of that time? They are indeed brought
to abhor that massacre. Ferocious as they are, it is not difficult to make them
dislike it, because the politicians and fashionable teachers have no interest
in giving their passions exactly the same direction. Still, however, they find
it their interest to keep the same savage dispositions alive. It was but the
other day that they caused this very massacre to be acted on the stage for the
diversion of the descendants of those who committed it. In this tragic farce
they produced the cardinal of Lorraine in his robes of function, ordering general
slaughter. Was this spectacle intended to make the Parisians abhor persecution
and loathe the effusion of blood? — No; it was to teach them to persecute
their own pastors; it was to excite them, by raising a disgust and horror of
their clergy, to an alacrity in hunting down to destruction an order which,
if it ought to exist at all, ought to exist not only in safety, but in reverence.
It was to stimulate their cannibal appetites (which one would think had been
gorged sufficiently) by variety and seasoning; and to quicken them to an alertness
in new murders and massacres, if it should suit the purpose of the Guises of
the day. An assembly, in which sat a multitude of priests and prelates, was
obliged to suffer this indignity at its door. The author was not sent to the
galleys, nor the players to the house of correction. Not long after this exhibition,
those players came forward to the Assembly to claim the rites of that very religion
which they had dared to expose, and to show their prostituted faces in the senate,
whilst the archbishop of Paris, whose function was known to his people only
by his prayers and benedictions, and his wealth only by his alms, is forced
to abandon his house and to fly from his flock (as from ravenous wolves) because,
truly, in the sixteenth century, the cardinal of Lorraine was a rebel and a
murderer. [38]
Such is the effect of the perversion of history by those who, for the same nefarious
purposes, have perverted every other part of learning. But those who will stand
upon that elevation of reason which places centuries under our eye and brings
things to the true point of comparison, which obscures little names and effaces
the colors of little parties, and to which nothing can ascend but the spirit
and moral quality of human actions, will say to the teachers of the Palais Royal:
The cardinal of Lorraine was the murderer of the sixteenth century, you have
the glory of being the murderers in the eighteenth, and this is the only difference
between you. But history in the nineteenth century, better understood and better
employed, will, I trust, teach a civilized posterity to abhor the misdeeds of
both these barbarous ages. It will teach future priests and magistrates not
to retaliate upon the speculative and inactive atheists of future times the
enormities committed by the present practical zealots and furious fanatics of
that wretched error, which, in its quiescent state, is more than punished whenever
it is embraced. It will teach posterity not to make war upon either religion
or philosophy for the abuse which the hypocrites of both have made of the two
most valuable blessings conferred upon us by the bounty of the universal Patron,
who in all things eminently favors and protects the race of man.
If your clergy, or any clergy, should show themselves vicious beyond the fair
bounds allowed to human infirmity, and to those professional faults which can
hardly be separated from professional virtues, though their vices never can
countenance the exercise of oppression, I do admit that they would naturally
have the effect of abating very much of our indignation against the tyrants
who exceed measure and justice in their punishment. I can allow in clergymen,
through all their divisions, some tenaciousness of their own opinion, some overflowings
of zeal for its propagation, some predilection to their own state and office,
some attachment to the interests of their own corps, some preference to those
who listen with docility to their doctrines, beyond those who scorn and deride
them. I allow all this, because I am a man who has to deal with men, and who
would not, through a violence of toleration, run into the greatest of all intolerance.
I must bear with infirmities until they fester into crimes.
Undoubtedly, the natural progress of the passions, from frailty to vice, ought
to be prevented by a watchful eye and a firm hand. But is it true that the body
of your clergy had passed those limits of a just allowance? From the general
style of your late publications of all sorts one would be led to believe that
your clergy in France were a sort of monsters, a horrible composition of superstition,
ignorance, sloth, fraud, avarice, and tyranny. But is this true? Is it true
that the lapse of time, the cessation of conflicting interests, the woeful experience
of the evils resulting from party rage have had no sort of influence gradually
to meliorate their minds? Is it true that they were daily renewing invasions
on the civil power, troubling the domestic quiet of their country, and rendering
the operations of its government feeble and precarious? Is it true that the
clergy of our times have pressed down the laity with an iron hand and were in
all places lighting up the fires of a savage persecution? Did they by every
fraud endeavor to increase their estates? Did they use to exceed the due demands
on estates that were their own? Or, rigidly screwing up right into wrong, did
they convert a legal claim into a vexatious extortion? When not possessed of
power, were they filled with the vices of those who envy it? Were they inflamed
with a violent, litigious spirit of controversy? Goaded on with the ambition
of intellectual sovereignty, were they ready to fly in the face of all magistracy,
to fire churches, to massacre the priests of other descriptions, to pull down
altars, and to make their way over the ruins of subverted governments to an
empire of doctrine, sometimes flattering, sometimes forcing the consciences
of men from the jurisdiction of public institutions into a submission of their
personal authority, beginning with a claim of liberty and ending with an abuse
of power?
These, or some of these, were the vices objected, and not wholly without foundation,
to several of the churchmen of former times who belonged to the two great parties
which then divided and distracted Europe.
If there was in France, as in other countries there visibly is, a great abatement
rather than any increase of these vices, instead of loading the present clergy
with the crimes of other men and the odious character of other times, in common
equity they ought to be praised, encouraged, and supported in their departure
from a spirit which disgraced their predecessors, and for having assumed a temper
of mind and manners more suitable to their sacred function.
When my occasions took me into France, toward the close of the late reign, the
clergy, under all their forms, engaged a considerable part of my curiosity.
So far from finding (except from one set of men, not then very numerous, though
very active) the complaints and discontents against that body, which some publications
had given me reason to expect, I perceived little or no public or private uneasiness
on their account. On further examination, I found the clergy, in general, persons
of moderate minds and decorous manners; I include the seculars and the regulars
of both sexes. I had not the good fortune to know a great many of the parochial
clergy, but in general I received a perfectly good account of their morals and
of their attention to their duties. With some of the higher clergy I had a personal
acquaintance, and of the rest in that class a very good means of information.
They were, almost all of them, persons of noble birth. They resembled others
of their own rank; and where there was any difference, it was in their favor.
They were more fully educated than the military noblesse, so as by no means
to disgrace their profession by ignorance or by want of fitness for the exercise
of their authority. They seemed to me, beyond the clerical character, liberal
and open, with the hearts of gentlemen and men of honor, neither insolent nor
servile in their manners and conduct. They seemed to me rather a superior class,
a set of men amongst whom you would not be surprised to find a Fenelon. I saw
among the clergy in Paris (many of the description are not to be met with anywhere)
men of great learning and candor; and I had reason to believe that this description
was not confined to Paris. What I found in other places I know was accidental,
and therefore to be presumed a fair example. I spent a few days in a provincial
town where, in the absence of the bishop, I passed my evenings with three clergymen,
his vicars-general, persons who would have done honor to any church. They were
all well informed; two of them of deep, general, and extensive erudition, ancient
and modern, oriental and western, particularly in their own profession. They
had a more extensive knowledge of our English divines than I expected, and they
entered into the genius of those writers with a critical accuracy. One of these
gentlemen is since dead, the Abbe Morangis. I pay this tribute, without reluctance,
to the memory of that noble, reverend, learned, and excellent person; and I
should do the same with equal cheerfulness to the merits of the others who,
I believe, are still living, if I did not fear to hurt those whom I am unable
to serve.
Some of these ecclesiastics of rank are by all titles persons deserving of general
respect. They are deserving of gratitude from me and from many English. If this
letter should ever come into their hands, I hope they will believe there are
those of our nation who feel for their unmerited fall and for the cruel confiscation
of their fortunes with no common sensibility. What I say of them is a testimony,
as far as one feeble voice can go, which I owe to truth. Whenever the question
of this unnatural persecution is concerned, I will pay it. No one shall prevent
me from being just and grateful. The time is fitted for the duty, and it is
particularly becoming to show our justice and gratitude when those who have
deserved well of us and of mankind are laboring under popular obloquy and the
persecutions of oppressive power.
You had before your Revolution about a hundred and twenty bishops. A few of
them were men of eminent sanctity, and charity without limit. When we talk of
the heroic, of course we talk of rare virtue. I believe the instances of eminent
depravity may be as rare amongst them as those of transcendent goodness. Examples
of avarice and of licentiousness may be picked out, I do not question it, by
those who delight in the investigation which leads to such discoveries. A man
as old as I am will not be astonished that several, in every description, do
not lead that perfect life of self-denial, with regard to wealth or to pleasure,
which is wished for by all, by some expected, but by none exacted with more
rigor than by those who are the most attentive to their own interests, or the
most indulgent to their own passions. When I was in France, I am certain that
the number of vicious prelates was not great. Certain individuals among them,
not distinguishable for the regularity of their lives, made some amends for
their want of the severe virtues in their possession of the liberal, and were
endowed with qualities which made them useful in the church and state. I am
told that, with few exceptions, Louis the Sixteenth had been more attentive
to character, in his promotions to that rank, than his immediate predecessor;
and I believe (as some spirit of reform has prevailed through the whole reign)
that it may be true. But the present ruling power has shown a disposition only
to plunder the church. It has punished all prelates, which is to favor the vicious,
at least in point of reputation. It has made a degrading pensionary establishment
to which no man of liberal ideas or liberal condition will destine his children.
It must settle into the lowest classes of the people. As with you the inferior
clergy are not numerous enough for their duties; as these duties are, beyond
measure, minute and toilsome; as you have left no middle classes of clergy at
their ease, in future nothing of science or erudition can exist in the Gallican
church. To complete the project without the least attention to the rights of
patrons, the Assembly has provided in future an elective clergy, an arrangement
which will drive out of the clerical profession all men of sobriety, all who
can pretend to independence in their function or their conduct, and which will
throw the whole direction of the public mind into the hands of a set of licentious,
bold, crafty, factious, flattering wretches, of such condition and such habits
of life as will make their contemptible pensions (in comparison of which the
stipend of an exciseman is lucrative and honorable) an object of low and illiberal
intrigue. Those officers whom they still call bishops are to be elected to a
provision comparatively mean, through the same arts (that is, electioneering
arts), by men of all religious tenets that are known or can be invented. The
new lawgivers have not ascertained anything whatsoever concerning their qualifications
relative either to doctrine or to morals, no more than they have done with regard
to the subordinate clergy; nor does it appear but that both the higher and the
lower may, at their discretion, practice or preach any mode of religion or irreligion
that they please. I do not yet see what the jurisdiction of bishops over their
subordinates is to be, or whether they are to have any jurisdiction at all.
In short, Sir, it seems to me that this new ecclesiastical establishment is
intended only to be temporary and preparatory to the utter abolition, under
any of its forms, of the Christian religion, whenever the minds of men are prepared
for this last stroke against it, by the accomplishment of the plan for bringing
its ministers into universal contempt. They who will not believe that the philosophical
fanatics who guide in these matters have long entertained such a design are
utterly ignorant of their character and proceedings. These enthusiasts do not
scruple to avow their opinion that a state can subsist without any religion
better than with one, and that they are able to supply the place of any good
which may be in it by a project of their own — namely, by a sort of eduction
they have imagined, founded in a knowledge of the physical wants of men, progressively
carried to an enlightened self-interest which, when well understood, they tell
us, will identify with an interest more enlarged and public. The scheme of this
education has been long known. Of late they distinguish it (as they have got
an entirely new nomenclature of technical terms) by the name of a Civic Education.
I hope their partisans in England (to whom I rather attribute very inconsiderate
conduct than the ultimate object in this detestable design) will succeed neither
in the pillage of the ecclesiastics, nor in the introduction of a principle
of popular election to our bishoprics and parochial cures. This, in the present
condition of the world, would be the last corruption of the church, the utter
ruin of the clerical character, the most dangerous shock that the state ever
received through a misunderstood arrangement of religion. I know well enough
that the bishoprics and cures under kingly and seignioral patronage, as now
they are in England, and as they have been lately in France, are sometimes acquired
by unworthy methods; but the other mode of ecclesiastical canvass subjects them
infinitely more surely and more generally to all the evil arts of low ambition,
which, operating on and through greater numbers, will produce mischief in proportion.
Those of you who have robbed the clergy think that they shall easily reconcile
their conduct to all Protestant nations, because the clergy, whom they have
thus plundered, degraded, and given over to mockery and scorn, are of the Roman
Catholic, that is, of their own pretended persuasion. I have no doubt that some
miserable bigots will be found here, as well as elsewhere, who hate sects and
parties different from their own more than they love the substance of religion,
and who are more angry with those who differ from them in their particular plans
and systems than displeased with those who attack the foundation of our common
hope. These men will write and speak on the subject in the manner that is to
be expected from their temper and character. Burnet says that when he was in
France, in the year 1683, "the method which carried over the men of the
finest parts to Popery was this — they brought themselves to doubt of
the whole Christian religion. When that was once done, it seemed a more indifferent
thing of what side or form they continued outwardly." If this was then
the ecclesiastical policy of France, it is what they have since but too much
reason to repent of. They preferred atheism to a form of religion not agreeable
to their ideas. They succeeded in destroying that form; and atheism has succeeded
in destroying them. I can readily give credit to Burnet's story, because I have
observed too much of a similar spirit (for a little of it is "much too
much") amongst ourselves. The humor, however, is not general.
THE teachers who reformed our religion in England bore no sort of resemblance
to your present reforming doctors in Paris. Perhaps they were (like those whom
they opposed) rather more than could be wished under the influence of a party
spirit, but they were more sincere believers, men of the most fervent and exalted
piety, ready to die (as some of them did die) like true heroes in defense of
their particular ideas of Christianity, as they would with equal fortitude,
and more cheerfully, for that stock of general truth for the branches of which
they contended with their blood. These men would have disavowed with horror
those wretches who claimed a fellowship with them upon no other titles than
those of their having pillaged the persons with whom they maintained controversies,
and their having despised the common religion for the purity of which they exerted
themselves with a zeal which unequivocally bespoke their highest reverence for
the substance of that system which they wished to reform. Many of their descendants
have retained the same zeal, but (as less engaged in conflict) with more moderation.
They do not forget that justice and mercy are substantial parts of religion.
Impious men do not recommend themselves to their communion by iniquity and cruelty
toward any description of their fellow creatures.
We hear these new teachers continually boasting of their spirit of toleration.
That those persons should tolerate all opinions, who think none to be of estimation,
is a matter of small merit. Equal neglect is not impartial kindness. The species
of benevolence which arises from contempt is no true charity. There are in England
abundance of men who tolerate in the true spirit of toleration. They think the
dogmas of religion, though in different degrees, are all of moment, and that
amongst them there is, as amongst all things of value, a just ground of preference.
They favor, therefore, and they tolerate. They tolerate, not because they despise
opinions, but because they respect justice. They would reverently and affectionately
protect all religions because they love and venerate the great principle upon
which they all agree, and the great object to which they are all directed. They
begin more and more plainly to discern that we have all a common cause, as against
a common enemy. They will not be so misled by the spirit of faction as not to
distinguish what is done in favor of their subdivision from those acts of hostility
which, through some particular description, are aimed at the whole corps, in
which they themselves, under another denomination, are included. It is impossible
for me to say what may be the character of every description of men amongst
us. But I speak for the greater part; and for them, I must tell you that sacrilege
is no part of their doctrine of good works; that, so far from calling you into
their fellowship on such title, if your professors are admitted to their communion,
they must carefully conceal their doctrine of the lawfulness of the prescription
of innocent men; and that they must make restitution of all stolen goods whatsoever.
Till then they are none of ours.
You may suppose that we do not approve your confiscation of the revenues of
bishops, and deans, and chapters, and parochial clergy possessing independent
estates arising from land, because we have the same sort of establishment in
England. That objection, you will say, cannot hold as to the confiscation of
the goods of monks and nuns and the abolition of their order. It is true that
this particular part of your general confiscation does not affect England, as
a precedent in point; but the reason implies, and it goes a great way. The Long
Parliament confiscated the lands of deans and chapters in England on the same
ideas upon which your Assembly set to sale the lands of the monastic orders.
But it is in the principle of injustice that the danger lies, and not in the
description of persons on whom it is first exercised. I see, in a country very
near us, a course of policy pursued which sets justice, the common concern of
mankind, at defiance. With the National Assembly of France possession is nothing,
law and usage are nothing. I see the National Assembly openly reprobate the
doctrine of prescription, which[39] one of the greatest of their own lawyers
tells us, with great truth, is a part of the law of nature. He tells us that
the positive ascertainment of its limits, and its security from invasion, were
among the causes for which civil society itself has been instituted. If prescription
be once shaken, no species of property is secure when it once becomes an object
large enough to tempt the cupidity of indigent power. I see a practice perfectly
correspondent to their contempt of this great fundamental part of natural law.
I see the confiscators begin with bishops and chapters, and monasteries, but
I do not see them end there. I see the princes of the blood, who by the oldest
usages of that kingdom held large landed estates, (hardly with the compliment
of a debate) deprived of their possessions and, in lieu of their stable, independent
property, reduced to the hope of some precarious, charitable pension at the
pleasure of an assembly which of course will pay little regard to the rights
of pensioners at pleasure when it despises those of legal proprietors. Flushed
with the insolence of their first inglorious victories, and pressed by the distresses
caused by their lust of unhallowed lucre, disappointed but not discouraged,
they have at length ventured completely to subvert all property of all descriptions
throughout the extent of a great kingdom. They have compelled all men, in all
transactions of commerce, in the disposal of lands, in civil dealing, and through
the whole communion of life, to accept as perfect payment and good and lawful
tender the symbols of their speculations on a projected sale of their plunder.
What vestiges of liberty or property have they left? The tenant right of a cabbage
garden, a year's interest in a hovel, the goodwill of an alehouse or a baker's
shop, the very shadow of a constructive property, are more ceremoniously treated
in our parliament than with you the oldest and most valuable landed possessions,
in the hands of the most respectable personages, or than the whole body of the
monied and commercial interest of your country. We entertain a high opinion
of the legislative authority, but we have never dreamt that parliaments had
any right whatever to violate property, to overrule prescription, or to force
a currency of their own fiction in the place of that which is real and recognized
by the law of nations. But you, who began with refusing to submit to the most
moderate restraints, have ended by establishing an unheard-of despotism. I find
the ground upon which your confiscators go is this: that, indeed, their proceedings
could not be supported in a court of justice, but that the rules of prescription
cannot bind a legislative assembly.[40](2) So that this legislative assembly
of a free nation sits, not for the security, but for the destruction, of property,
and not of property only, but of every rule and maxim which can give it stability,
and of those instruments which can alone give it circulation.
When the Anabaptists of Munster, in the sixteenth century, had filled Germany
with confusion by their system of leveling and their wild opinions concerning
property, to what country in Europe did not the progress of their fury furnish
just cause of alarm?
Of all things, wisdom is the most terrified with epidemical fanaticism, because
of all enemies it is that against which she is the least able to furnish any
kind of resource. We cannot be ignorant of the spirit of atheistical fanaticism
that is inspired by a multitude of writings dispersed with incredible assiduity
and expense, and by sermons delivered in all the streets and places of public
resort in Paris. These writings and sermons have filled the populace with a
black and savage atrocity of mind, which supersedes in them the common feelings
of nature as well as all sentiments of morality and religion, insomuch that
these wretches are induced to bear with a sullen patience the intolerable distresses
brought upon them by the violent convulsions and permutations that have been
made in property.[41] The spirit of proselytism attends this spirit of fanaticism.
They have societies to cabal and correspond at home and abroad for the propagation
of their tenets. The republic of Berne, one of the happiest, the most prosperous,
and the best governed countries upon earth, is one of the great objects at the
destruction of which they aim. I am told they have in some measure succeeded
in sowing there the seeds of discontent. They are busy throughout Germany. Spain
and Italy have not been untried. England is not left out of the comprehensive
scheme of their malignant charity; and in England we find those who stretch
out their arms to them, who recommend their example from more than one pulpit,
and who choose in more than one periodical meeting publicly to correspond with
them, to applaud them, and to hold them up as objects for imitation; who receive
from them tokens of confraternity, and standards consecrated amidst their rites
and mysteries;[42](2) who suggest to them leagues of perpetual amity, at the
very time when the power to which our constitution has exclusively delegated
the federative capacity of this kingdom may find it expedient to make war upon
them.
It is not the confiscation of our church property from this example in France
that I dread, though I think this would be no trifling evil. The great source
of my solicitude is, lest it should ever be considered in England as the policy
of a state to seek a resource in confiscations of any kind, or that any one
description of citizens should be brought to regard any of the others as their
proper prey.[43] Nations are wading deeper and deeper into an ocean of boundless
debt. Public debts, which at first were a security to governments by interesting
many in the public tranquillity, are likely in their excess to become the means
of their subversion. If governments provide for these debts by heavy impositions,
they perish by becoming odious to the people. If they do not provide for them,
they will be undone by the efforts of the most dangerous of all parties —
I mean an extensive, discontented monied interest, injured and not destroyed.
The men who compose this interest look for their security, in the first instance,
to the fidelity of government; in the second, to its power. If they find the
old governments effete, worn out, and with their springs relaxed, so as not
to be of sufficient vigor for their purposes, they may seek new ones that shall
be possessed of more energy; and this energy will be derived, not from an acquisition
of resources, but from a contempt of justice. Revolutions are favorable to confiscation;
and it is impossible to know under what obnoxious names the next confiscations
will be authorized. I am sure that the principles predominant in France extend
to very many persons and descriptions of persons, in all countries, who think
their innoxious indolence their security. This kind of innocence in proprietors
may be argued into inutility; and inutility into an unfitness for their estates.
Many parts of Europe are in open disorder. In many others there is a hollow
murmuring under ground; a confused movement is felt that threatens a general
earthquake in the political world. Already confederacies and correspondencies
of the most extraordinary nature are forming in several countries.[44](2) In
such a state of things we ought to hold ourselves upon our guard. In all mutations
(if mutations must be) the circumstance which will serve most to blunt the edge
of their mischief and to promote what good may be in them is that they should
find us with our minds tenacious of justice and tender of property.
But it will be argued that this confiscation in France ought not to alarm other
nations. They say it is not made from wanton rapacity, that it is a great measure
of national policy adopted to remove an extensive, inveterate, superstitious
mischief. It is with the greatest difficulty that I am able to separate policy
from justice. Justice itself is the great standing policy of civil society,
and any eminent departure from it, under any circumstances, lies under the suspicion
of being no policy at all.
When men are encouraged to go into a certain mode of life by the existing laws,
and protected in that mode as in a lawful occupation; when they have accommodated
all their ideas and all their habits to it; when the law had long made their
adherence to its rules a ground of reputation, and their departure from them
a ground of disgrace and even of penalty — I am sure it is unjust in legislature,
by an arbitrary act, to offer a sudden violence to their minds and their feelings,
forcibly to degrade them from their state and condition and to stigmatize with
shame and infamy that character and those customs which before had been made
the measure of their happiness and honor. If to this be added an expulsion from
their habitations and a confiscation of all their goods, I am not sagacious
enough to discover how this despotic sport, made of the feelings, consciences,
prejudices, and properties of men, can be discriminated from the rankest tyranny.
If the injustice of the course pursued in France be clear, the policy of the
measure, that is, the public benefit to be expected from it, ought to be at
least as evident and at least as important. To a man who acts under the influence
of no passion, who has nothing in view in his projects but the public good,
a great difference will immediately strike him between what policy would dictate
on the original introduction of such institutions and on a question of their
total abolition, where they have cast their roots wide and deep, and where,
by long habit, things more valuable than themselves are so adapted to them,
and in a manner interwoven with them, that the one cannot be destroyed without
notably impairing the other. He might be embarrassed if the case were really
such as sophisters represent it in their paltry style of debating. But in this,
as in most questions of state, there is a middle. There is something else than
the mere alternative of absolute destruction or unreformed existence. Spartam
nactus es; hanc exorna. This is, in my opinion, a rule of profound sense and
ought never to depart from the mind of an honest reformer. I cannot conceive
how any man can have brought himself to that pitch of presumption to consider
his country as nothing but carte blanche — upon which he may scribble
whatever he pleases. A man full of warm, speculative benevolence may wish his
society otherwise constituted than he finds it, but a good patriot and a true
politician always considers how he shall make the most of the existing materials
of his country. A disposition to preserve and an ability to improve, taken together,
would be my standard of a statesman. Everything else is vulgar in the conception,
perilous in the execution.
There are moments in the fortune of states when particular men are called to
make improvements by great mental exertion. In those moments, even when they
seem to enjoy the confidence of their prince and country, and to be invested
with full authority, they have not always apt instruments. A politician, to
do great things, looks for a power what our workmen call a purchase; and if
he finds that power, in politics as in mechanics, he cannot be at a loss to
apply it. In the monastic institutions, in my opinion, was found a great power
for the mechanism of politic benevolence. There were revenues with a public
direction; there were men wholly set apart and dedicated to public purposes,
without any other than public ties and public principles; men without the possibility
of converting the estate of the community into a private fortune; men denied
to self-interests, whose avarice is for some community; men to whom personal
poverty is honor, and implicit obedience stands in the place of freedom. In
vain shall a man look to the possibility of making such things when he wants
them. The winds blow as they list. These institutions are the products of enthusiasm;
they are the instruments of wisdom. Wisdom cannot create materials; they are
the gifts of nature or of chance; her pride is in the use. The perennial existence
of bodies corporate and their fortunes are things particularly suited to a man
who has long views; who meditates designs that require time in fashioning, and
which propose duration when they are accomplished. He is not deserving to rank
high, or even to be mentioned in the order of great statesmen, who, having obtained
the command and direction of such a power as existed in the wealth, the discipline,
and the habits of such corporations, as those which you have rashly destroyed,
cannot find any way of converting it to the great and lasting benefit of his
country. On the view of this subject, a thousand uses suggest themselves to
a contriving mind. To destroy any power growing wild from the rank productive
force of the human mind is almost tantamount, in the moral world, to the destruction
of the apparently active properties of bodies in the material. It would be like
the attempt to destroy (if it were in our competence to destroy) the expansive
force of fixed air in nitre, or the power of steam, or of electricity, or of
magnetism. These energies always existed in nature, and they were always discernible.
They seemed, some of them unserviceable, some noxious, some no better than a
sport to children, until contemplative ability, combining with practic skill,
tamed their wild nature, subdued them to use, and rendered them at once the
most powerful and the most tractable agents in subservience to the great views
and designs of men. Did fifty thousand persons whose mental and whose bodily
labor you might direct, and so many hundred thousand a year of a revenue which
was neither lazy nor superstitious, appear too big for your abilities to wield?
Had you no way of using them but by converting monks into pensioners? Had you
no way of turning the revenue to account but through the improvident resource
of a spendthrift sale? If you were thus destitute of mental funds, the proceeding
is in its natural course. Your politicians do not understand their trade; and
therefore they sell their tools.
But the institutions savor of superstition in their very principle, and they
nourish it by a permanent and standing influence. This I do not mean to dispute,
but this ought not to hinder you from deriving from superstition itself any
resources which may thence be furnished for the public advantage. You derive
benefits from many dispositions and many passions of the human mind which are
of as doubtful a color, in the moral eye, as superstition itself. It was your
business to correct and mitigate everything which was noxious in this passion,
as in all the passions. But is superstition the greatest of all possible vices?
In its possible excess I think it becomes a very great evil. It is, however,
a moral subject and, of course, admits of all degrees and all modifications.
Superstition is the religion of feeble minds; and they must be tolerated in
an intermixture of it, in some trifling or some enthusiastic shape or other,
else you will deprive weak minds of a resource found necessary to the strongest.
The body of all true religion consists, to be sure, in obedience to the will
of the Sovereign of the world, in a confidence in his declarations, and in imitation
of his perfections. The rest is our own. It may be prejudicial to the great
end; it may be auxiliary. Wise men, who as such are not admirers (not admirers
at least of the Munera Terrae), are not violently attached to these things,
nor do they violently hate them. Wisdom is not the most severe corrector of
folly. They are the rival follies which mutually wage so unrelenting a war,
and which make so cruel a use of their advantages as they can happen to engage
the immoderate vulgar, on the one side or the other, in their quarrels. Prudence
would be neuter, but if, in the contention between fond attachment and fierce
antipathy concerning things in their nature not made to produce such heats,
a prudent man were obliged to make a choice of what errors and excesses of enthusiasm
he would condemn or bear, perhaps he would think the superstition which builds
to be more tolerable than that which demolishes; that which adorns a country,
than that which deforms it; that which endows, than that which plunders; that
which disposes to mistaken beneficence, than that which stimulates to real injustice;
that which leads a man to refuse to himself lawful pleasures, than that which
snatches from others the scanty subsistence of their self-denial. Such, I think,
is very nearly the state of the question between the ancient founders of monkish
superstition and the superstition of the pretended philosophers of the hour.
For the present I postpone all consideration of the supposed public profit of
the sale, which however I conceive to be perfectly delusive. I shall here only
consider it as a transfer of property. On the policy of that transfer I shall
trouble you with a few thoughts.
In every prosperous community something more is produced than goes to the immediate
support of the producer. This surplus forms the income of the landed capitalist.
It will be spent by a proprietor who does not labor. But this idleness is itself
the spring of labor; this repose the spur to industry. The only concern of the
state is that the capital taken in rent from the land should be returned again
to the industry from whence it came, and that its expenditure should be with
the least possible detriment to the morals of those who expend it, and to those
of the people to whom it is returned.
In all the views of receipt, expenditure, and personal employment, a sober legislator
would carefully compare the possessor whom he was recommended to expel with
the stranger who was proposed to fill his place. Before the inconveniences are
incurred which must attend all violent revolutions in property through extensive
confiscation, we ought to have some rational assurance that the purchasers of
the confiscated property will be in a considerable degree more laborious, more
virtuous, more sober, less disposed to extort an unreasonable proportion of
the gains of the laborer, or to consume on themselves a larger share than is
fit for the measure of an individual; or that they should be qualified to dispense
the surplus in a more steady and equal mode, so as to answer the purposes of
a politic expenditure, than the old possessors, call those possessors bishops,
or canons, or commendatory abbots, or monks, or what you please. The monks are
lazy. Be it so. Suppose them no otherwise employed than by singing in the choir.
They are as usefully employed as those who neither sing nor say; as usefully
even as those who sing upon the stage. They are as usefully employed as if they
worked from dawn to dark in the innumerable servile, degrading, unseemly, unmanly,
and often most unwholesome and pestiferous occupations to which by the social
economy so many wretches are inevitably doomed. If it were not generally pernicious
to disturb the natural course of things and to impede in any degree the great
wheel of circulation which is turned by the strangely-directed labor of these
unhappy people, I should be infinitely more inclined forcibly to rescue them
from their miserable industry than violently to disturb the tranquil repose
of monastic quietude. Humanity, and perhaps policy, might better justify me
in the one than in the other. It is a subject on which I have often reflected,
and never reflected without feeling from it. I am sure that no consideration,
except the necessity of submitting to the yoke of luxury and the despotism of
fancy, who in their own imperious way will distribute the surplus product of
the soil, can justify the toleration of such trades and employments in a well-regulated
state. But for this purpose of distribution, it seems to me that the idle expenses
of monks are quite as well directed as the idle expenses of us lay-loiterers.
When the advantages of the possession and of the project are on a par, there
is no motive for a change. But in the present case, perhaps, they are not upon
a par, and the difference is in favor of the possession. It does not appear
to me that the expenses of those whom you are going to expel do in fact take
a course so directly and so generally leading to vitiate and degrade and render
miserable those through whom they pass as the expenses of those favorites whom
you are intruding into their houses. Why should the expenditure of a great landed
property, which is a dispersion of the surplus product of the soil, appear intolerable
to you or to me when it takes its course through the accumulation of vast libraries,
which are the history of the force and weakness of the human mind; through great
collections of ancient records, medals, and coins, which attest and explain
laws and customs; through paintings and statues that, by imitating nature, seem
to extend the limits of creation; through grand monuments of the dead, which
continue the regards and connections of life beyond the grave; through collections
of the specimens of nature which become a representative assembly of all the
classes and families of the world that by disposition facilitate and, by exciting
curiosity, open the avenues to science? If by great permanent establishments
all these objects of expense are better secured from the inconstant sport of
personal caprice and personal extravagance, are they worse than if the same
tastes prevailed in scattered individuals? Does not the sweat of the mason and
carpenter, who toil in order to partake of the sweat of the peasant, flow as
pleasantly and as salubriously in the construction and repair of the majestic
edifices of religion as in the painted booths and sordid sties of vice and luxury;
as honorably and as profitably in repairing those sacred works which grow hoary
with innumerable years as on the momentary receptacles of transient voluptuousness;
in opera houses, and brothels, and gaming houses, and clubhouses, and obelisks
in the Champ de Mars? Is the surplus product of the olive and the vine worse
employed in the frugal sustenance of persons whom the fictions of a pious imagination
raise to dignity by construing in the service of God, than in pampering the
innumerable multitude of those who are degraded by being made useless domestics,
subservient to the pride of man? Are the decorations of temples an expenditure
less worthy a wise man than ribbons, and laces, and national cockades, and petit
maisons, and petit soupers, and all the innumerable fopperies and follies in
which opulence sports away the burden of its superfluity?
We tolerate even these, not from love of them, but for fear of worse. We tolerate
them because property and liberty, to a degree, require that toleration. But
why proscribe the other, and surely, in every point of view, the more laudable,
use of estates? Why, through the violation of all property, through an outrage
upon every principle of liberty, forcibly carry them from the better to the
worse?
This comparison between the new individuals and the old corps is made upon a
supposition that no reform could be made in the latter. But in a question of
reformation I always consider corporate bodies, whether sole or consisting of
many, to be much more susceptible of a public direction by the power of the
state, in the use of their property and in the regulation of modes and habits
of life in their members, than private citizens ever can be or, perhaps, ought
to be; and this seems to me a very material consideration for those who undertake
anything which merits the name of a politic enterprise. — So far as to
the estates of monasteries.
With regard to the estates possessed by bishops and canons and commendatory
abbots, I cannot find out for what reason some landed estates may not be held
otherwise than by inheritance. Can any philosophic spoiler undertake to demonstrate
the positive or the comparative evil of having a certain, and that too a large,
portion of landed property passing in succession through persons whose title
to it is, always in theory and often in fact, an eminent degree of piety, morals,
and learning — a property which, by its destination, in their turn, and
on the score of merit, gives to the noblest families renovation and support,
to the lowest the means of dignity and elevation; a property the tenure of which
is the performance of some duty (whatever value you may choose to set upon that
duty), and the character of whose proprietors demands, at least, an exterior
decorum and gravity of manners; who are to exercise a generous but temperate
hospitality; part of whose income they are to consider as a trust for charity;
and who, even when they fail in their trust, when they slide from their character
and degenerate into a mere common secular nobleman or gentleman, are in no respect
worse than those who may succeed them in their forfeited possessions? Is it
better that estates should be held by those who have no duty than by those who
have one? — by those whose character and destination point to virtues
than by those who have no rule and direction in the expenditure of their estates
but their own will and appetite? Nor are these estates held together in the
character or with the evils supposed inherent in mortmain. They pass from hand
to hand with a more rapid circulation than any other. No excess is good; and,
therefore, too great a proportion of landed property may be held officially
for life; but it does not seem to me of material injury to any commonwealth
that there should exist some estates that have a chance of being acquired by
other means than the previous acquisition of money.
THIS LETTER HAS GROWN to a great length, though it is, indeed, short with regard
to the infinite extent of the subject. Various avocations have from time to
time called my mind from the subject. I was not sorry to give myself leisure
to observe whether, in the proceedings of the National Assembly, I might not
find reasons to change or to qualify some of my first sentiments. Everything
has confirmed me more strongly in my first opinions. It was my original purpose
to take a view of the principles of the National Assembly with regard to the
great and fundamental establishments, and to compare the whole of what you have
substituted in the place of what you have destroyed with the several members
of our British constitution. But this plan is of a greater extent than at first
I computed, and I find that you have little desire to take the advantage of
any examples. At present I must content myself with some remarks upon your establishments,
reserving for another time what I proposed to say concerning the spirit of our
British monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy, as practically they exist.
I have taken a view of what has been done by the governing power in France.
I have certainly spoken of it with freedom. Those whose principle it is to despise
the ancient, permanent sense of mankind and to set up a scheme of society on
new principles must naturally expect that such of us who think better of the
judgment of the human race than of theirs should consider both them and their
devices as men and schemes upon their trial. They must take it for granted that
we attend much to their reason, but not at all to their authority. They have
not one of the great influencing prejudices of mankind in their favor. They
avow their hostility to opinion. Of course, they must expect no support from
that influence which, with every other authority, they have deposed from the
seat of its jurisdiction.
I can never consider this Assembly as anything else than a voluntary association
of men who have availed themselves of circumstances to seize upon the power
of the state. They have not the sanction and authority of the character under
which they first met. They have assumed another of a very different nature and
have completely altered and inverted all the relations in which they originally
stood. They do not hold the authority they exercise under any constitutional
law of the state. They have departed from the instructions of the people by
whom they were sent, which instructions, as the Assembly did not act in virtue
of any ancient usage or settled law, were the sole source of their authority.
The most considerable of their acts have not been done by great majorities;
and in this sort of near divisions, which carry only the constructive authority
of the whole, strangers will consider reasons as well as resolutions.
If they had set up this new experimental government as a necessary substitute
for an expelled tyranny, mankind would anticipate the time of prescription which,
through long usage, mellows into legality governments that were violent in their
commencement. All those who have affections which lead them to the conservation
of civil order would recognize, even in its cradle, the child as legitimate
which has been produced from those principles of cogent expediency to which
all just governments owe their birth, and on which they justify their continuance.
But they will be late and reluctant in giving any sort of countenance to the
operations of a power which has derived its birth from no law and no necessity,
but which, on the contrary, has had its origin in those vices and sinister practices
by which the social union is often disturbed and sometimes destroyed. This Assembly
has hardly a year's prescription. We have their own word for it that they have
made a revolution. To make a revolution is a measure which, prima fronte, requires
an apology. To make a revolution is to subvert the ancient state of our country;
and no common reasons are called for to justify so violent a proceeding. The
sense of mankind authorizes us to examine into the mode of acquiring new power,
and to criticize on the use that is made of it, with less awe and reverence
than that which is usually conceded to a settled and recognized authority.
In obtaining and securing their power the Assembly proceeds upon principles
the most opposite to those which appear to direct them in the use of it. An
observation on this difference will let us into the true spirit of their conduct.
Everything which they have done, or continue to do. in order to obtain and keep
their power is by the most common arts. They proceed exactly as their ancestors
of ambition have done before them. — Trace them through all their artifices,
frauds, and violences, you can find nothing at all that is new. They follow
precedents and examples with the punctilious exactness of a pleader. They never
depart an iota from the authentic formulas of tyranny and usurpation. But in
all the regulations relative to the public good, the spirit has been the very
reverse of this. There they commit the whole to the mercy of untried speculations;
they abandon the dearest interests of the public to those loose theories to
which none of them would choose to trust the slightest of his private concerns.
They make this difference, because in their desire of obtaining and securing
power they are thoroughly in earnest; there they travel in the beaten road.
The public interests, because about them they have no real solicitude, they
abandon wholly to chance; I say to chance, because their schemes have nothing
in experience to prove their tendency beneficial.
We must always see with a pity not unmixed with respect the errors of those
who are timid and doubtful of themselves with regard to points wherein the happiness
of mankind is concerned. But in these gentlemen there is nothing of the tender,
parental solicitude which fears to cut up the infant for the sake of an experiment.
In the vastness of their promises and the confidence of their predictions, they
far outdo all the boasting of empirics. The arrogance of their pretensions in
a manner provokes and challenges us to an inquiry into their foundation.
I AM convinced that there are men of considerable parts among the popular leaders
in the National Assembly. Some of them display eloquence in their speeches and
their writings. This cannot be without powerful and cultivated talents. But
eloquence may exist without a proportionable degree of wisdom. When I speak
of ability, I am obliged to distinguish. What they have done toward the support
of their system bespeaks no ordinary men. In the system itself, taken as the
scheme of a republic constructed for procuring the prosperity and security of
the citizen, and for promoting the strength and grandeur of the state, I confess
myself unable to find out anything which displays in a single instance the work
of a comprehensive and disposing mind or even the provisions of a vulgar prudence.
Their purpose everywhere seems to have been to evade and slip aside from difficulty.
This it has been the glory of the great masters in all the arts to confront,
and to overcome; and when they had overcome the first difficulty, to turn it
into an instrument for new conquests over new difficulties, thus to enable them
to extend the empire of their science and even to push forward, beyond the reach
of their original thoughts, the landmarks of the human understanding itself.
Difficulty is a severe instructor, set over us by the supreme ordinance of a
parental Guardian and Legislator, who knows us better than we know ourselves,
as he loves us better, too. Pater ipse colendi haud facilem esse viam voluit.
He that wrestles with us strengthens our nerves and sharpens our skill. Our
antagonist is our helper. This amicable conflict with difficulty obliges us
to an intimate acquaintance with our object and compels us to consider it in
all its relations. It will not suffer us to be superficial. It is the want of
nerves of understanding for such a task, it is the degenerate fondness for tricking
shortcuts and little fallacious facilities that has in so many parts of the
world created governments with arbitrary powers.
They have created the late arbitrary monarchy of France. They have created the
arbitrary republic of Paris. With them defects in wisdom are to be supplied
by the plenitude of force. They get nothing by it. Commencing their labors on
a principle of sloth, they have the common fortune of slothful men. The difficulties,
which they rather had eluded than escaped, meet them again in their course;
they multiply and thicken on them; they are involved, through a labyrinth of
confused detail, in an industry without limit and without direction; and, in
conclusion, the whole of their work becomes feeble, vicious, and insecure.
It is this inability to wrestle with difficulty which has obliged the arbitrary
Assembly of France to commence their schemes of reform with abolition and total
destruction.[45] But is it in destroying and pulling down that skill is displayed?
Your mob can do this as well at least as your assemblies. The shallowest understanding,
the rudest hand is more than equal to that task. Rage and frenzy will pull down
more in half an hour than prudence, deliberation, and foresight can build up
in a hundred years.
The errors and defects of old establishments are visible and palpable. It calls
for little ability to point them out; and where absolute power is given, it
requires but a word wholly to abolish the vice and the establishment together.
The same lazy but restless disposition which loves sloth and hates quiet directs
the politicians when they come to work for supplying the place of what they
have destroyed. To make everything the reverse of what they have seen is quite
as easy as to destroy. No difficulties occur in what has never been tried. Criticism
is almost baffled in discovering the defects of what has not existed; and eager
enthusiasm and cheating hope have all the wide field of imagination in which
they may expatiate with little or no opposition.
At once to preserve and to reform is quite another thing. When the useful parts
of an old establishment are kept, and what is superadded is to be fitted to
what is retained, a vigorous mind, steady, persevering attention, various powers
of comparison and combination, and the resources of an understanding fruitful
in expedients are to be exercised; they are to be exercised in a continued conflict
with the combined force of opposite vices, with the obstinacy that rejects all
improvement and the levity that is fatigued and disgusted with everything of
which it is in possession. But you may object — "A process of this
kind is slow. It is not fit for an assembly which glories in performing in a
few months the work of ages. Such a mode of reforming, possibly, might take
up many years". Without question it might; and it ought. It is one of the
excellences of a method in which time is amongst the assistants, that its operation
is slow and in some cases almost imperceptible. If circumspection and caution
are a part of wisdom when we work only upon inanimate matter, surely they become
a part of duty, too, when the subject of our demolition and construction is
not brick and timber but sentient beings, by the sudden alteration of whose
state, condition, and habits multitudes may be rendered miserable. But it seems
as if it were the prevalent opinion in Paris that an unfeeling heart and an
undoubting confidence are the sole qualifications for a perfect legislator.
Far different are my ideas of that high office. The true lawgiver ought to have
a heart full of sensibility. He ought to love and respect his kind, and to fear
himself. It may be allowed to his temperament to catch his ultimate object with
an intuitive glance, but his movements toward it ought to be deliberate. Political
arrangement, as it is a work for social ends, is to be only wrought by social
means. There mind must conspire with mind. Time is required to produce that
union of minds which alone can produce all the good we aim at. Our patience
will achieve more than our force.
If I might venture to appeal to what is so much out of fashion in Paris, I mean
to experience, I should tell you that in my course I have known and, according
to my measure, have co-operated with great men; and I have never yet seen any
plan which has not been mended by the observation of those who were much inferior
in understanding to the person who took the lead in the business. By a slow
but well-sustained progress the effect of each step is watched; the good or
ill success of the first gives light to us in the second; and so, from light
to light, we are conducted with safety through the whole series. We see that
the parts of the system do not clash. The evils latent in the most promising
contrivances are provided for as they arise. One advantage is as little as possible
sacrificed to another. We compensate, we reconcile, we balance. We are enabled
to unite into a consistent whole the various anomalies and contending principles
that are found in the minds and affairs of men. From hence arises, not an excellence
in simplicity, but one far superior, an excellence in composition. Where the
great interests of mankind are concerned through a long succession of generations,
that succession ought to be admitted into some share in the councils which are
so deeply to affect them. If justice requires this, the work itself requires
the aid of more minds than one age can furnish. It is from this view of things
that the best legislators have been often satisfied with the establishment of
some sure, solid, and ruling principle in government — a power like that
which some of the philosophers have called a plastic nature; and having fixed
the principle, they have left it afterwards to its own operation.
To proceed in this manner, that is, to proceed with a presiding principle and
a prolific energy is with me the criterion of profound wisdom. What your politicians
think the marks of a bold, hardy genius are only proofs of a deplorable want
of ability. By their violent haste and their defiance of the process of nature,
they are delivered over blindly to every projector and adventurer, to every
alchemist and empiric. They despair of turning to account anything that is common.
Diet is nothing in their system of remedy. The worst of it is that this their
despair of curing common distempers by regular methods arises not only from
defect of comprehension but, I fear, from some malignity of disposition. Your
legislators seem to have taken their opinions of all professions, ranks, and
offices from the declamations and buffooneries of satirists; who would themselves
be astonished if they were held to the letter of their own descriptions. By
listening only to these, your leaders regard all things only on the side of
their vices and faults, and view those vices and faults under every color of
exaggeration. It is undoubtedly true, though it may seem paradoxical; but in
general, those who are habitually employed in finding and displaying faults
are unqualified for the work of reformation, because their minds are not only
unfurnished with patterns of the fair and good, but by habit they come to take
no delight in the contemplation of those things. By hating vices too much, they
come to love men too little. It is, therefore, not wonderful that they should
be indisposed and unable to serve them. From hence arises the complexional disposition
of some of your guides to pull everything in pieces. At this malicious game
they display the whole of their quadrimanous activity. As to the rest, the paradoxes
of eloquent writers, brought forth purely as a sport of fancy to try their talents,
to rouse attention and excite surprise, are taken up by these gentlemen, not
in the spirit of the original authors, as means of cultivating their taste and
improving their style. These paradoxes become with them serious grounds of action
upon which they proceed in regulating the most important concerns of the state.
Cicero ludicrously describes Cato as endeavoring to act, in the commonwealth,
upon the school paradoxes which exercised the wits of the junior students in
the Stoic philosophy. If this was true of Cato, these gentlemen copy after him
in the manner of some persons who lived about his time — pede nudo Catonem.
Mr. Hume told me that he had from Rousseau himself the secret of his principles
of composition. That acute though eccentric observer had perceived that to strike
and interest the public the marvelous must be produced; that the marvelous of
the heathen mythology had long since lost its effect; that the giants, magicians,
fairies, and heroes of romance which succeeded had exhausted the portion of
credulity which belonged to their age; that now nothing was left to the writer
but that species of the marvelous which might still be produced, and with as
great an effect as ever, though in another way; that is, the marvelous in life,
in manners, in characters, and in extraordinary situations, giving rise to new
and unlooked-for strokes in politics and morals. I believe that were Rousseau
alive and in one of his lucid intervals, he would be shocked at the practical
frenzy of his scholars, who in their paradoxes are servile imitators, and even
in their incredulity discover an implicit faith.
Men who undertake considerable things, even in a regular way, ought to give
us ground to presume ability. But the physician of the state who, not satisfied
with the cure of distempers, undertakes to regenerate constitutions ought to
show uncommon powers. Some very unusual appearances of wisdom ought to display
themselves on the face of the designs of those who appeal to no practice, and
who copy after no model. Has any such been manifested? I shall take a view (it
shall for the subject be a very short one) of what the Assembly has done with
regard, first, to the constitution of the legislature; in the next place, to
that of the executive power; then to that of the judicature; afterwards to the
model of the army; and conclude with the system of finance; to see whether we
can discover in any part of their schemes the portentous ability which may justify
these bold undertakers in the superiority which they assume over mankind.
IT IS IN THE MODEL of the sovereign and presiding part of this new republic
that we should expect their grand display. Here they were to prove their title
to their proud demands. For the plan itself at large, and for the reasons on
which it is grounded, I refer to the journals of the Assembly of the 29th of
September, 1789, and to the subsequent proceedings which have made any alterations
in the plan. So far as in a matter somewhat confused I can see light, the system
remains substantially as it has been originally framed. My few remarks will
be such as regard its spirit, its tendency, and its fitness for framing a popular
commonwealth, which they profess theirs to be, suited to the ends for which
any commonwealth, and particularly such a commonwealth, is made. At the same
time I mean to consider its consistency with itself and its own principles.
Old establishments are tried by their effects. If the people are happy, united,
wealthy, and powerful, we presume the rest. We conclude that to be good from
whence good is derived. In old establishments various correctives have been
found for their aberrations from theory. Indeed, they are the results of various
necessities and expediencies. They are not often constructed after any theory;
theories are rather drawn from them. In them we often see the end best obtained
where the means seem not perfectly reconcilable to what we may fancy was the
original scheme. The means taught by experience may be better suited to political
ends than those contrived in the original project. They again react upon the
primitive constitution, and sometimes improve the design itself, from which
they seem to have departed. I think all this might be curiously exemplified
in the British constitution. At worst, the errors and deviations of every kind
in reckoning are found and computed, and the ship proceeds in her course. This
is the case of old establishments; but in a new and merely theoretic system,
it is expected that every contrivance shall appear, on the face of it, to answer
its ends, especially where the projectors are no way embarrassed with an endeavor
to accommodate the new building to an old one, either in the walls or on the
foundations.
The French builders, clearing away as mere rubbish whatever they found and,
like their ornamental gardeners, forming everything into an exact level, propose
to rest the whole local and general legislature on three bases of three different
kinds: one geometrical, one arithmetical, and the third financial; the first
of which they call the basis of territory; the second, the basis of population;
and the third, the basis of contribution. For the accomplishment of the first
of these purposes they divide the area of their country into eighty-three pieces,
regularly square, of eighteen leagues by eighteen. These large divisions are
called Departments. These they portion, proceeding by square measurement, into
seventeen hundred and twenty districts called Communes. These again they subdivide,
still proceeding by square measurement, into smaller districts called Cantons,
making in all 6400.
At first view this geometrical basis of theirs presents not much to admire or
to blame. It calls for no great legislative talents. Nothing more than an accurate
land surveyor, with his chain, sight, and theodolite, is requisite for such
a plan as this. In the old divisions of the country, various accidents at various
times and the ebb and flow of various properties and jurisdictions settled their
bounds. These bounds were not made upon any fixed system, undoubtedly. They
were subject to some inconveniences, but they were inconveniences for which
use had found remedies, and habit had supplied accommodation and patience. In
this new pavement of square within square, and this organization and semi-organization,
made on the system of Empedocles and Buffon, and not upon any politic principle,
it is impossible that innumerable local inconveniences, to which men are not
habituated, must not arise. But these I pass over, because it requires an accurate
knowledge of the country, which I do not possess, to specify them.
When these state surveyors came to take a view of their work of measurement,
they soon found that in politics the most fallacious of all things was geometrical
demonstration. They had then recourse to another basis (or rather buttress)
to support the building, which tottered on that false foundation. It was evident
that the goodness of the soil, the number of the people, their wealth, and the
largeness of their contribution made such infinite variations between square
and square as to render mensuration a ridiculous standard of power in the commonwealth,
and equality in geometry the most unequal of all measures in the distribution
of men. However, they could not give it up. But dividing their political and
civil representation into three parts, they allotted one of those parts to the
square measurement, without a single fact or calculation to ascertain whether
this territorial proportion of representation was fairly assigned, and ought
upon any principle really to be a third. Having, however, given to geometry
this portion (of a third for her dower) out of compliment, I suppose, to that
sublime science, they left the other two to be scuffled for between the other
parts, population and contribution.
When they came to provide for population, they were not able to proceed quite
so smoothly as they had done in the field of their geometry. Here their arithmetic
came to bear upon their juridical metaphysics. Had they stuck to their metaphysic
principles, the arithmetical process would be simple indeed. Men, with them,
are strictly equal and are entitled to equal rights in their own government.
Each head, on this system, would have its vote, and every man would vote directly
for the person who was to represent him in the legislature. "But soft —
by regular degrees, not yet". This metaphysic principle to which law, custom,
usage, policy, reason were to yield is to yield itself to their pleasure. There
must be many degrees, and some stages, before the representative can come in
contact with his constituent. Indeed, as we shall soon see, these two persons
are to have no sort of communion with each other. First, the voters in the Canton,
who compose what they call "primary assemblies", are to have a qualification.
What! a qualification on the indefeasible rights of men? Yes; but it shall be
a very small qualification. Our injustice shall be very little oppressive: only
the local valuation of three days' labor paid to the public. Why, this is not
much, I readily admit, for anything but the utter subversion of your equalizing
principle. As a qualification it might as well be let alone, for it answers
no one purpose for which qualifications are established; and, on your ideas,
it excludes from a vote the man of all others whose natural equality stands
the most in need of protection and defense — I mean the man who has nothing
else but his natural equality to guard him. You order him to buy the right which
you before told him nature had given to him gratuitously at his birth, and of
which no authority on earth could lawfully deprive him. With regard to the person
who cannot come up to your market, a tyrannous aristocracy, as against him,
is established at the very outset by you who pretend to be its sworn foe.
The gradation proceeds. These primary assemblies of the Canton elect deputies
to the Commune; one for every two hundred qualified inhabitants. Here is the
first medium put between the primary elector and the representative legislator;
and here a new turnpike is fixed for taxing the rights of men with a second
qualification; for none can be elected into the Commune who does not pay the
amount of ten days' labor. Nor have we yet done. There is still to be another
gradation.[46] These Communes, chosen by the Canton, choose to the Department;
and the deputies of the Department choose their deputies to the National Assembly.
Here is a third barrier of a senseless qualification. Every deputy to the National
Assembly must pay, in direct contribution, to the value of a mark of silver.
Of all these qualifying barriers we must think alike — that they are impotent
to secure independence, strong only to destroy the rights of men.
In all this process, which in its fundamental elements affects to consider only
population upon a principle of natural right, there is a manifest attention
to property, which, however just and reasonable on other schemes, is on theirs
perfectly unsupportable.
When they come to their third basis, that of contribution, we find that they
have more completely lost sight of their rights of men. This last basis rests
entirely on property. A principle totally different from the equality of men,
and utterly irreconcilable to it, is thereby admitted; but no sooner is this
principle admitted than (as usual) it is subverted; and it is not subverted
(as we shall presently see) to approximate the inequality of riches to the level
of nature. The additional share in the third portion of representation (a portion
reserved exclusively for the higher contribution) is made to regard the district
only, and not the individuals in it who pay. It is easy to perceive, by the
course of their reasonings, how much they were embarrassed by their contradictory
ideas of the rights of men and the privileges of riches. The committee of constitution
do as good as admit that they are wholly irreconcilable. "The relation
with regard to the contributions is without doubt null (say they) when the question
is on the balance of the political rights as between individual and individual,
without which personal equality would be destroyed and an aristocracy of the
rich would be established. But this inconvenience entirely disappears when the
proportional relation of the contribution is only considered in the great masses,
and is solely between province and province; it serves in that case only to
form a just reciprocal proportion between the cities without affecting the personal
rights of the citizens".
Here the principle of contribution, as taken between man and man, is reprobated
as null and destructive to equality, and as pernicious, too, because it leads
to the establishment of an aristocracy of the rich. However, it must not be
abandoned. And the way of getting rid of the difficulty is to establish the
inequality as between department and department, leaving all the individuals
in each department upon an exact par. Observe that this parity between individuals
had been before destroyed when the qualifications within the departments were
settled; nor does it seem a matter of great importance whether the equality
of men be injured by masses or individually. An individual is not of the same
importance in a mass represented by a few as in a mass represented by many.
It would be too much to tell a man jealous of his equality that the elector
has the same franchise who votes for three members as he who votes for ten.
Now take it in the outer point of view and let us suppose their principle of
representation according to contribution, that is, according to riches, to be
well imagined and to be a necessary basis for their republic. In this their
third basis they assume that riches ought to be respected, and that justice
and policy require that they should entitle men, in some mode or other, to a
larger share in the administration of public affairs; it is now to be seen how
the Assembly provides for the preeminence, or even for the security, of the
rich by conferring, in virtue of their opulence, that larger measure of power
to their district which is denied to them personally. I readily admit (indeed
I should lay it down as a fundamental principle) that in a republican government
which has a democratic basis the rich do require an additional security above
what is necessary to them in monarchies. They are subject to envy, and through
envy to oppression. On the present scheme it is impossible to divine what advantage
they derive from the aristocratic preference upon which the unequal representation
of the masses is founded. The rich cannot feel it, either as a support to dignity
or as security to fortune, for the aristocratic mass is generated from purely
democratic principles, and the preference given to it in the general representation
has no sort of reference to, or connection with, the persons upon account of
whose property this superiority of the mass is established. If the contrivers
of this scheme meant any sort of favor to the rich, in consequence of their
contribution, they ought to have conferred the privilege either on the individual
rich or on some class formed of rich persons (as historians represent Servius
Tullius to have done in the early constitution of Rome), because the contest
between the rich and the poor is not a struggle between corporation and corporation,
but a contest between men and men — a competition not between districts,
but between descriptions. It would answer its purpose better if the scheme were
inverted: that the vote of the masses were rendered equal, and that the votes
within each mass were proportioned to property.
Let us suppose one man in a district (it is an easy supposition) to contribute
as much as a hundred of his neighbors. Against these he has but one vote. If
there were but one representative for the mass, his poor neighbors would outvote
him by a hundred to one for that single representative. Bad enough. But amends
are to be made him. How? The district, in virtue of his wealth, is to choose,
say, ten members instead of one; that is to say, by paying a very large contribution
he has the happiness of being outvoted a hundred to one by the poor for ten
representatives, instead of being outvoted exactly in the same proportion for
a single member. In truth, instead of benefiting by this superior quantity of
representation, the rich man is subjected to an additional hardship. The increase
of representation within his province sets up nine persons more, and as many
more than nine as there may be democratic candidates, to cabal and intrigue,
and to flatter the people at his expense and to his oppression. An interest
is by this means held out to multitudes of the inferior sort, in obtaining a
salary of eighteen livres a day (to them a vast object) besides the pleasure
of a residence in Paris and their share in the government of the kingdom. The
more the objects of ambition are multiplied and become democratic, just in that
proportion the rich are endangered.
Thus it must fare between the poor and the rich in the province deemed aristocratic,
which in its internal relation is the very reverse of that character. In its
external relation, that is, its relation to the other provinces, I cannot see
how the unequal representation which is given to masses on account of wealth
becomes the means of preserving the equipoise and the tranquillity of the commonwealth.
For if it be one of the objects to secure the weak from being crushed by the
strong (as in all society undoubtedly it is), how are the smaller and poorer
of these masses to be saved from the tyranny of the more wealthy? Is it by adding
to the wealthy further and more systematical means of oppressing them? When
we come to a balance of representation between corporate bodies, provincial
interests, emulations, and jealousies are full as likely to arise among them
as among individuals; and their divisions are likely to produce a much hotter
spirit of dissension, and something leading much more nearly to a war.
I see that these aristocratic masses are made upon what is called the principle
of direct contribution. Nothing can be a more unequal standard than this. The
indirect contribution, that which arises from duties on consumption, is in truth
a better standard and follows and discovers wealth more naturally than this
of direct contribution. It is difficult, indeed, to fix a standard of local
preference on account of the one, or of the other, or of both, because some
provinces may pay the more of either or of both on account of causes not intrinsic,
but originating from those very districts over whom they have obtained a preference
in consequence of their ostensible contribution. If the masses were independent,
sovereign bodies who were to provide for a federative treasury by distinct contingents,
and that the revenue had not (as it has) many impositions running through the
whole, which affect men individually, and not corporately, and which, by their
nature, confound all territorial limits, something might be said for the basis
of contribution as founded on masses. But of all things, this representation,
to be measured by contribution, is the most difficult to settle upon principles
of equity in a country which considers its districts as members of a whole.
For a great city, such as Bordeaux or Paris, appears to pay a vast body of duties,
almost out of all assignable proportion to other places, and its mass is considered
accordingly. But are these cities the true contributors in that proportion?
No. The consumers of the commodities imported into Bordeaux, who are scattered
through all France, pay the import duties of Bordeaux. The produce of the vintage
in Guienne and Languedoc give to that city the means of its contribution growing
out of an export commerce. The landholders who spend their estates in Paris,
and are thereby the creators of that city, contribute for Paris from the provinces
out of which their revenues arise. Very nearly the same arguments will apply
to the representative share given on account of direct contributions, because
the direct contribution must be assessed on wealth, real or presumed; and that
local wealth will itself arise from causes not local, and which therefore in
equity ought not to produce a local preference.
It is very remarkable that in this fundamental regulation which settles the
representation of the mass upon the direct contribution, they have not yet settled
how that direct contribution shall be laid, and how apportioned. Perhaps there
is some latent policy toward the continuance of the present Assembly in this
strange procedure. However, until they do this, they can have no certain constitution.
It must depend at last upon the system of taxation, and must vary with every
variation in that system. As they have contrived matters, their taxation does
not so much depend on their constitution as their constitution on their taxation.
This must introduce great confusion among the masses, as the variable qualification
for votes within the district must, if ever real contested elections take place,
cause infinite internal controversies.
To compare together the three bases, not on their political reason, but on the
ideas on which the Assembly works, and to try its consistency with itself, we
cannot avoid observing that the principle which the committee call the basis
of population does not begin to operate from the same point with the two other
principles called the bases of territory and of contribution, which are both
of an aristocratic nature. The consequence is that, where all three begin to
operate together, there is the most absurd inequality produced by the operation
of the former on the two latter principles. Every canton contains four square
leagues, and is estimated to contain, on the average, 4000 inhabitants or 680
voters in the primary assemblies, which vary in numbers with the population
of the canton, and send one deputy to the commune for every 200 voters. Nine
cantons make a commune.
Now let us take a canton containing a seaport town of trade, or a great manufacturing
town. Let us suppose the population of this canton to be 12,700 inhabitants,
or 2193 voters, forming three primary assemblies, and sending ten deputies to
the commune.
Oppose to this one canton two others of the remaining eight in the same commune.
These we may suppose to have their fair population of 4000 inhabitants and 680
voters each, or 8000 inhabitants and 1360 voters, both together. These will
form only two primary assemblies and send only six deputies to the commune.
When the assembly of the commune comes to vote on the basis of territory, which
principle is first admitted to operate in that assembly, the single canton which
has half the territory of the other two will have ten voices to six in the election
of three deputies to the assembly of the department chosen on the express ground
of a representation of territory.
This inequality, striking as it is, will be yet highly aggravated if we suppose,
as we fairly may, the several other cantons of the commune to fall proportionably
short of the average population, as much as the principal canton exceeds it.
Now as to the basis of contribution, which also is a principle admitted first
to operate in the assembly of the commune. Let us again take one canton, such
as is stated above. If the whole of the direct contributions paid by a great
trading or manufacturing town be divided equally among the inhabitants, each
individual will be found to pay much more than an individual living in the country
according to the same average. The whole paid by the inhabitants of the former
will be more than the whole paid by the inhabitants of the latter — we
may fairly assume one-third more. Then the 12,700 inhabitants, or 2193 voters
of the canton, will pay as much as 19,050 inhabitants, or 3289 voters of the
other cantons, which are nearly the estimated proportion of inhabitants and
voters of five other cantons. Now the 2193 voters will, as I before said, send
only ten deputies to the assembly; the 3289 voters will send sixteen. Thus,
for an equal share in the contribution of the whole commune, there will be a
difference of sixteen voices to ten in voting for deputies to be chosen on the
principle of representing the general contribution of the whole commune.
By the same mode of computation we shall find 15,875 inhabitants, or 2741 voters
of the other cantons, who pay one-sixth LESS to the contribution of the whole
commune, will have three VOICES MORE than the 12,700 inhabitants, or 2193 voters
of the one canton.
Such is the fantastical and unjust inequality between mass and mass in this
curious repartition of the rights of representation arising out of territory
and contribution. The qualifications which these confer are in truth negative
qualifications, that give a right in an inverse proportion to the possession
of them.
In this whole contrivance of the three bases, consider it in any light you please,
I do not see a variety of objects reconciled in one consistent whole, but several
contradictory principles reluctantly and irreconcilably brought and held together
by your philosophers, like wild beasts shut up in a cage to claw and bite each
other to their mutual destruction.
I am afraid I have gone too far into their way of considering the formation
of a constitution. They have much, but bad, metaphysics; much, but bad, geometry;
much, but false, proportionate arithmetic; but if it were all as exact as metaphysics,
geometry, and arithmetic ought to be, and if their schemes were perfectly consistent
in all their parts, it would make only a more fair and sightly vision. It is
remarkable that, in a great arrangement of mankind, not one reference whatsoever
is to be found to anything moral or anything politic, nothing that relates to
the concerns, the actions, the passions, the interests of men. Hominem non sapiunt.
You see I only consider this constitution as electoral, and leading by steps
to the National Assembly. I do not enter into the internal government of the
departments and their genealogy through the communes and cantons. These local
governments are, in the original plan, to be as nearly as possible composed
in the same manner and on the same principles with the elective assemblies.
They are each of them bodies perfectly compact and rounded in themselves.
You cannot but perceive in this scheme that it has a direct and immediate tendency
to sever France into a variety of republics, and to render them totally independent
of each other without any direct constitutional means of coherence, connection,
or subordination, except what may be derived from their acquiescence in the
determinations of the general congress of the ambassadors from each independent
republic. Such in reality is the National Assembly, and such governments I admit
do exist in the world, though in forms infinitely more suitable to the local
and habitual circumstances of their people. But such associations, rather than
bodies politic, have generally been the effect of necessity, not choice; and
I believe the present French power is the very first body of citizens who, having
obtained full authority to do with their country what they pleased, have chosen
to dissever it in this barbarous manner.
It is impossible not to observe that, in the spirit of this geometrical distribution
and arithmetical arrangement, these pretended citizens treat France exactly
like a country of conquest. Acting as conquerors, they have imitated the policy
of the harshest of that harsh race. The policy of such barbarous victors, who
contemn a subdued people and insult their feelings, has ever been, as much as
in them lay, to destroy all vestiges of the ancient country, in religion, in
polity, in laws, and in manners; to confound all territorial limits; to produce
a general poverty; to put up their properties to auction; to crush their princes,
nobles, and pontiffs; to lay low everything which had lifted its head above
the level, or which could serve to combine or rally, in their distresses, the
disbanded people under the standard of old opinion. They have made France free
in the manner in which those sincere friends to the rights of mankind, the Romans,
freed Greece, Macedon, and other nations. They destroyed the bonds of their
union under color of providing for the independence of each of their cities.
When the members who compose these new bodies of cantons, communes, and departments
— arrangements purposely produced through the medium of confusion —
begin to act, they will find themselves in a great measure strangers to one
another. The electors and elected throughout, especially in the rural cantons,
will be frequently without any civil habitudes or connections, or any of that
natural discipline which is the soul of a true republic. Magistrates and collectors
of revenue are now no longer acquainted with their districts, bishops with their
dioceses, or curates with their parishes. These new colonies of the rights of
men bear a strong resemblance to that sort of military colonies which Tacitus
has observed upon in the declining policy of Rome. In better and wiser days
(whatever course they took with foreign nations) they were careful to make the
elements of methodical subordination and settlement to be coeval, and even to
lay the foundations of civil discipline in the military.[47] But when all the
good arts had fallen into ruin, they proceeded, as your Assembly does, upon
the equality of men, and with as little judgment and as little care for those
things which make a republic tolerable or durable. But in this, as well as almost
every instance, your new commonwealth is born and bred and fed in those corruptions
which mark degenerated and worn-out republics. Your child comes into the world
with the symptoms of death: the facies Hippocratica forms the character of its
physiognomy, and the prognostic of its fate.
The legislators who framed the ancient republics knew that their business was
too arduous to be accomplished with no better apparatus than the metaphysics
of an undergraduate, and the mathematics and arithmetic of an exciseman. They
had to do with men, and they were obliged to study human nature. They had to
do with citizens, and they were obliged to study the effects of those habits
which are communicated by the circumstances of civil life. They were sensible
that the operation of this second nature on the first produced a new combination;
and thence arose many diversities amongst men, according to their birth, their
education, their professions, the periods of their lives, their residence in
towns or in the country, their several ways of acquiring and of fixing property,
and according to the quality of the property itself — all which rendered
them as it were so many different species of animals. From hence they thought
themselves obliged to dispose their citizens into such classes, and to place
them in such situations in the state, as their peculiar habits might qualify
them to fill, and to allot to them such appropriated privileges as might secure
to them what their specific occasions required, and which might furnish to each
description such force as might protect it in the conflict caused by the diversity
of interests that must exist and must contend in all complex society; for the
legislator would have been ashamed that the coarse husbandman should well know
how to assort and to use his sheep, horses, and oxen, and should have enough
of common sense not to abstract and equalize them all into animals without providing
for each kind an appropriate food, care, and employment, whilst he, the economist,
disposer, and shepherd of his own kindred, subliming himself into an airy metaphysician,
was resolved to know nothing of his flocks but as men in general. It is for
this reason that Montesquieu observed very justly that in their classification
of the citizens the great legislators of antiquity made the greatest display
of their powers, and even soared above themselves. It is here that your modern
legislators have gone deep into the negative series, and sunk even below their
own nothing. As the first sort of legislators attended to the different kinds
of citizens and combined them into one commonwealth, the others, the metaphysical
and alchemistical legislators, have taken the direct contrary course. They have
attempted to confound all sorts of citizens, as well as they could, into one
homogeneous mass; and then they divided this their amalgama into a number of
incoherent republics. They reduce men to loose counters, merely for the sake
of simple telling, and not to figures whose power is to arise from their place
in the table. The elements of their own metaphysics might have taught them better
lessons. The troll of their categorical table might have informed them that
there was something else in the intellectual world besides substance and quantity.
They might learn from the catechism of metaphysics that there were eight heads
more[48] in every complex deliberation which they have never thought of, though
these, of all the ten, are the subjects on which the skill of man can operate
anything at all.
So far from this able disposition of some of the old republican legislators,
which follows with a solicitous accuracy the moral conditions and propensities
of men, they have leveled and crushed together all the orders which they found,
even under the coarse unartificial arrangement of the monarchy, in which mode
of government the classing of the citizens is not of so much importance as in
a republic. It is true, however, that every such classification, if properly
ordered, is good in all forms of government, and composes a strong barrier against
the excesses of despotism, as well as it is the necessary means of giving effect
and permanence to a republic. For want of something of this kind, if the present
project of a republic should fail, all securities to a moderated freedom fail
along with it; all the indirect restraints which mitigate despotism are removed,
insomuch that if monarchy should ever again obtain an entire ascendancy in France,
under this or under any other dynasty, it will probably be, if not voluntarily
tempered at setting out by the wise and virtuous counsels of the prince, the
most completely arbitrary power that has ever appeared on earth. This is to
play a most desperate game.
The confusion which attends on all such proceedings they even declare to be
one of their objects, and they hope to secure their constitution by a terror
of a return of those evils which attended their making it. "By this,"
say they, "its destruction will become difficult to authority, which cannot
break it up without the entire disorganization of the whole state." They
presume that, if this authority should ever come to the same degree of power
that they have acquired, it would make a more moderate and chastised use of
it, and would piously tremble entirely to disorganize the state in the savage
manner that they have done. They expect, from the virtues of returning despotism,
the security which is to be enjoyed by the offspring of their popular vices.
I WISH, Sir, that you and my readers would give an attentive perusal to the
work of M. de Calonne on this subject. It is, indeed, not only an eloquent,
but an able and instructive, performance. I confine myself to what he says relative
to the constitution of the new state and to the condition of the revenue. As
to the disputes of this minister with his rivals, I do not wish to pronounce
upon them. As little do I mean to hazard any opinion concerning his ways and
means, financial or political, for taking his country out of its present disgraceful
and deplorable situation of servitude, anarchy, bankruptcy, and beggary. I cannot
speculate quite so sanguinely as he does; but he is a Frenchman, and has a closer
duty relative to those objects, and better means of judging of them, than I
can have. I wish that the formal avowal which he refers to, made by one of the
principal leaders in the Assembly concerning the tendency of their scheme to
bring France not only from a monarchy to a republic, but from a republic to
a mere confederacy, may be very particularly attended to. It adds new force
to my observations, and indeed M. de Calonne's work supplies my deficiencies
by many new and striking arguments on most of the subjects of this letter.[49]
It is this resolution, to break their country into separate republics, which
has driven them into the greatest number of their difficulties and contradictions.
If it were not for this, all the questions of exact equality and these balances,
never to be settled, of individual rights, population, and contribution would
be wholly useless. The representation, though derived from parts, would be a
duty which equally regarded the whole. Each deputy to the Assembly would be
the representative of France, and of all its descriptions, of the many and of
the few, of the rich and of the poor, of the great districts and of the small.
All these districts would themselves be subordinate to some standing authority,
existing independently of them, an authority in which their representation,
and everything that belongs to it, originated, and to which it was pointed.
This standing, unalterable, fundamental government would make, and it is the
only thing which could make, that territory truly and properly a whole. With
us, when we elect popular representatives, we send them to a council in which
each man individually is a subject and submitted to a government complete in
all its ordinary functions. With you the elective Assembly is the sovereign,
and the sole sovereign; all the members are therefore integral parts of this
sole sovereignty. But with us it is totally different. With us the representative,
separated from the other parts, can have no action and no existence. The government
is the point of reference of the several members and districts of our representation.
This is the center of our unity. This government of reference is a trustee for
the whole, and not for the parts. So is the other branch of our public council,
I mean the House of Lords. With us the king and the lords are several and joint
securities for the equality of each district, each province, each city. When
did you hear in Great Britain of any province suffering from the inequality
of its representation, what district from having no representation at all? Not
only our monarchy and our peerage secure the equality on which our unity depends,
but it is the spirit of the House of Commons itself. The very inequality of
representation, which is so foolishly complained of, is perhaps the very thing
which prevents us from thinking or acting as members for districts. Cornwall
elects as many members as all Scotland. But is Cornwall better taken care of
than Scotland? Few trouble their heads about any of your bases, out of some
giddy clubs. Most of those who wish for any change, upon any plausible grounds,
desire it on different ideas.
Your new constitution is the very reverse of ours in its principle; and I am
astonished how any persons could dream of holding out anything done in it as
an example for Great Britain. With you there is little, or rather no, connection
between the last representative and the first constituent. The member who goes
to the National Assembly is not chosen by the people, nor accountable to them.
There are three elections before he is chosen; two sets of magistracy intervene
between him and the primary assembly, so as to render him, as I have said, an
ambassador of a state, and not the representative of the people within a state.
By this the whole spirit of the election is changed, nor can any corrective
which your constitution-mongers have devised render him anything else than what
he is. The very attempt to do it would inevitably introduce a confusion, if
possible, more horrid than the present. There is no way to make a connection
between the original constituent and the representative, but by the circuitous
means which may lead the candidate to apply in the first instance to the primary
electors, in order that by their authoritative instructions (and something more
perhaps) these primary electors may force the two succeeding bodies of electors
to make a choice agreeable to their wishes. But this would plainly subvert the
whole scheme. It would be to plunge them back into that tumult and confusion
of popular election which, by their interposed gradation of elections, they
mean to avoid, and at length to risk the whole fortune of the state with those
who have the least knowledge of it and the least interest in it. This is a perpetual
dilemma into which they are thrown by the vicious, weak, and contradictory principles
they have chosen. Unless the people break up and level this gradation, it is
plain that they do not at all substantially elect to the Assembly; indeed, they
elect as little in appearance as reality.
What is it we all seek for in an election? To answer its real purposes, you
must first possess the means of knowing the fitness of your man; and then you
must retain some hold upon him by personal obligation or dependence. For what
end are these primary electors complimented, or rather mocked, with a choice?
They can never know anything of the qualities of him that is to serve them,
nor has he any obligation whatsoever to them. Of all the powers unfit to be
delegated by those who have any real means of judging, that most peculiarly
unfit is what relates to a personal choice. In case of abuse, that body of primary
electors never can call the representative to an account for his conduct. He
is too far removed from them in the chain of representation. If he acts improperly
at the end of his two years' lease, it does not concern him for two years more.
By the new French constitution the best and the wisest representatives go equally
with the worst into this Limbus Patrum. Their bottoms are supposed foul, and
they must go into dock to be refitted. Every man who has served in an assembly
is ineligible for two years after. Just as these magistrates begin to learn
their trade, like chimney sweepers, they are disqualified for exercising it.
Superficial, new, petulant acquisition, and interrupted, dronish, broken, ill
recollection is to be the destined character of all your future governors. Your
constitution has too much of jealousy to have much of sense in it. You consider
the breach of trust in the representative so principally that you do not at
all regard the question of his fitness to execute it.
This purgatory interval is not unfavorable to a faithless representative, who
may be as good a canvasser as he was a bad governor. In this time he may cabal
himself into a superiority over the wisest and most virtuous. As in the end
all the members of this elective constitution are equally fugitive and exist
only for the election, they may be no longer the same persons who had chosen
him, to whom he is to be responsible when he solicits for a renewal of his trust.
To call all the secondary electors of the Commune to account is ridiculous,
impracticable, and unjust; they may themselves have been deceived in their choice,
as the third set of electors, those of the Department, may be in theirs. In
your elections responsibility cannot exist.
FINDING NO SORT OF PRINCIPLE of coherence with each other in the nature and
constitution of the several new republics of France, I considered what cement
the legislators had provided for them from any extraneous materials. Their confederations,
their spectacles, their civic feasts, and their enthusiasm I take no notice
of; they are nothing but mere tricks; but tracing their policy through their
actions, I think I can distinguish the arrangements by which they propose to
hold these republics together. The first is the confiscation, with the compulsory
paper currency annexed to it; the second is the supreme power of the city of
Paris; the third is the general army of the state. Of this last I shall reserve
what I have to say until I come to consider the army as a head by itself.
As to the operation of the first (the confiscation and paper currency) merely
as a cement, I cannot deny that these, the one depending on the other, may for
some time compose some sort of cement if their madness and folly in the management,
and in the tempering of the parts together, does not produce a repulsion in
the very outset. But allowing to the scheme some coherence and some duration,
it appears to me that if, after a while, the confiscation should not be found
sufficient to support the paper coinage (as I am morally certain it will not),
then, instead of cementing, it will add infinitely to the dissociation, distraction,
and confusion of these confederate republics, both with relation to each other
and to the several parts within themselves. But if the confiscation should so
far succeed as to sink the paper currency, the cement is gone with the circulation.
In the meantime its binding force will be very uncertain, and it will straiten
or relax with every variation in the credit of the paper.
One thing only is certain in this scheme, which is an effect seemingly collateral,
but direct, I have no doubt, in the minds of those who conduct this business,
that is, its effect in producing an oligarchy in every one of the republics.
A paper circulation, not founded on any real money deposited or engaged for,
amounting already to forty-four millions of English money, and this currency
by force substituted in the place of the coin of the kingdom, becoming thereby
the substance of its revenue as well as the medium of all its commercial and
civil intercourse, must put the whole of what power, authority, and influence
is left, in any form whatsoever it may assume, into the hands of the managers
and conductors of this circulation.
In England, we feel the influence of the Bank, though it is only the center
of a voluntary dealing. He knows little indeed of the influence of money upon
mankind who does not see the force of the management of a monied concern which
is so much more extensive and in its nature so much more depending on the managers
than any of ours. But this is not merely a money concern. There is another member
in the system inseparably connected with this money management. It consists
in the means of drawing out at discretion portions of the confiscated lands
for sale, and carrying on a process of continual transmutation of paper into
land, and land into paper. When we follow this process in its effects, we may
conceive something of the intensity of the force with which this system must
operate. By this means the spirit of money-jobbing and speculation goes into
the mass of land itself and incorporates with it. By this kind of operation
that species of property becomes (as it were) volatilized; it assumes an unnatural
and monstrous activity, and thereby throws into the hands of the several managers,
principal and subordinate, Parisian and provincial, all the representative of
money and perhaps a full tenth part of all the land in France, which has now
acquired the worst and most pernicious part of the evil of a paper circulation,
the greatest possible uncertainty in its value. They have reversed the Latonian
kindness to the landed property of Delos. They have sent theirs to be blown
about, like the light fragments of a wreck, oras et littora circum.
The new dealers, being all habitually adventurers and without any fixed habits
of local predilections, will purchase to job out again, as the market of paper
or of money or of land shall present an advantage. For though a holy bishop
thinks that agriculture will derive great advantages from the "enlightened"
usurers who are to purchase the church confiscations, I, who am not a good but
an old farmer, with great humility beg leave to tell his late lordship that
usury is not a tutor of agriculture; and if the word "enlightened"
be understood according to the new dictionary, as it always is in your new schools,
I cannot conceive how a man's not believing in God can teach him to cultivate
the earth with the least of any additional skill or encouragement. "Diis
immortalibus sero", said an old Roman, when he held one handle of the plough,
whilst Death held the other. Though you were to join in the commission all the
directors of the two academies to the directors of the Caisse d'Escompte, one
old, experienced peasant is worth them all. I have got more information upon
a curious and interesting branch of husbandry, in one short conversation with
an old Carthusian monk, than I have derived from all the Bank directors that
I have ever conversed with. However, there is no cause for apprehension from
the meddling of money dealers with rural economy. These gentlemen are too wise
in their generation. At first, perhaps, their tender and susceptible imaginations
may be captivated with the innocent and unprofitable delights of a pastoral
life; but in a little time they will find that agriculture is a trade much more
laborious, and much less lucrative, than that which they had left. After making
its panegyric, they will turn their backs on it like their great precursor and
prototype. They may, like him, begin by singing "Beatus ille" but
what will be the end?
Haec ubi locutus foenerator Alphius,
Jam jam futurus rusticus
Omnem redegit idibus pecuniam;
Quaerit calendis ponere.
They will cultivate the Caisse d'Eglise, under the sacred auspices of this prelate,
with much more profit than its vineyards and its cornfields. They will employ
their talents according to their habits and their interests. They will not follow
the plough whilst they can direct treasuries and govern provinces.
Your legislators, in everything new, are the very first who have founded a commonwealth
upon gaming, and infused this spirit into it as its vital breath. The great
object in these politics is to metamorphose France from a great kingdom into
one great playtable; to turn its inhabitants into a nation of gamesters; to
make speculation as extensive as life; to mix it with all its concerns and to
divert the whole of the hopes and fears of the people from their usual channels
into the impulses, passions, and superstitions of those who live on chances.
They loudly proclaim their opinion that this their present system of a republic
cannot possibly exist without this kind of gaming fund, and that the very thread
of its life is spun out of the staple of these speculations. The old gaming
in funds was mischievous enough, undoubtedly, but it was so only to individuals.
Even when it had its greatest extent, in the Mississippi and South Sea, it affected
but few, comparatively; where it extends further, as in lotteries, the spirit
has but a single object. But where the law, which in most circumstances forbids,
and in none countenances, gaming, is itself debauched so as to reverse its nature
and policy and expressly to force the subject to this destructive table by bringing
the spirit and symbols of gaming into the minutest matters and engaging everybody
in it, and in everything, a more dreadful epidemic distemper of that kind is
spread than yet has appeared in the world. With you a man can neither earn nor
buy his dinner without a speculation. What he receives in the morning will not
have the same value at night. What he is compelled to take as pay for an old
debt will not be received as the same when he comes to pay a debt contracted
by himself, nor will it be the same when by prompt payment he would avoid contracting
any debt at all. Industry must wither away. Economy must be driven from your
country. Careful provision will have no existence. Who will labor without knowing
the amount of his pay? Who will study to increase what none can estimate? Who
will accumulate, when he does not know the value of what he saves? If you abstract
it from its uses in gaming, to accumulate your paper wealth would be not the
providence of a man, but the distempered instinct of a jackdaw.
The truly melancholy part of the policy of systematically making a nation of
gamesters is this, that though all are forced to play, few can understand the
game; and fewer still are in a condition to avail themselves of the knowledge.
The many must be the dupes of the few who conduct the machine of these speculations.
What effect it must have on the country people is visible. The townsman can
calculate from day to day, not so the inhabitant of the country. When the peasant
first brings his corn to market, the magistrate in the towns obliges him to
take the assignat at par; when he goes to the shop with his money, he finds
it seven per cent the worse for crossing the way. This market he will not readily
resort to again. The townspeople will be inflamed; they will force the country
people to bring their corn. Resistance will begin, and the murders of Paris
and St. Denis may be renewed through all France.
What signifies the empty compliment paid to the country by giving it, perhaps,
more than its share in the theory of your representation? Where have you placed
the real power over monied and landed circulation? Where have you placed the
means of raising and falling the value of every man's freehold? Those whose
operations can take form, or add ten per cent to, the possessions of every man
in France must be the masters of every man in France. The whole of the power
obtained by this revolution will settle in the towns among the burghers and
the monied directors who lead them. The landed gentleman, the yeoman, and the
peasant have, none of them, habits or inclinations or experience which can lead
them to any share in this the sole source of power and influence now left in
France. The very nature of a country life, the very nature of landed property,
in all the occupations, and all the pleasures they afford, render combination
and arrangement (the sole way of procuring and exerting influence) in a manner
impossible amongst country people. Combine them by all the art you can, and
all the industry, they are always dissolving into individuality. Anything in
the nature of incorporation is almost impracticable amongst them. Hope, fear,
alarm, jealousy, the ephemerous tale that does its business and dies in a day
— all these things which are the reins and spurs by which leaders check
or urge the minds of followers are not easily employed, or hardly at all, amongst
scattered people. They assemble, they arm, they act with the utmost difficulty
and at the greatest charge. Their efforts, if ever they can be commenced, cannot
be sustained. They cannot proceed systematically.
If the country gentlemen attempt an influence through the mere income of their
property, what is it to that of those who have ten times their income to sell,
and who can ruin their property by bringing their plunder to meet it at market?
If the landed man wishes to mortgage, he falls the value of his land and raises
the value of assignats. He augments the power of his enemy by the very means
he must take to contend with him. The country gentleman, therefore, the officer
by sea and land, the man of liberal views and habits, attached to no profession,
will be as completely excluded from the government of his country as if he were
legislatively proscribed. It is obvious that in the towns all things which conspire
against the country gentleman combine in favor of the money manager and director.
In towns combination is natural. The habits of burghers, their occupations,
their diversion, their business, their idleness continually bring them into
mutual contact. Their virtues and their vices are sociable; they are always
in garrison; and they come embodied and half disciplined into the hands of those
who mean to form them for civil or military action.
All these considerations leave no doubt on my mind that, if this monster of
a constitution can continue, France will be wholly governed by the agitators
in corporations, by societies in the towns formed of directors of assignats,
and trustees for the sale of church lands, attorneys, agents, money jobbers,
speculators, and adventurers, composing an ignoble oligarchy founded on the
destruction of the crown, the church, the nobility, and the people. Here end
all the deceitful dreams and visions of the equality and rights of men. In the
Serbonian bog of this base oligarchy they are all absorbed, sunk, and lost forever.
Though human eyes cannot trace them, one would be tempted to think some great
offenses in France must cry to heaven, which has thought fit to punish it with
a subjection to a vile and inglorious domination in which no comfort or compensation
is to be found in any, even of those false, splendors which, playing about other
tyrannies, prevent mankind from feeling themselves dishonored even whilst they
are oppressed. I must confess I am touched with a sorrow, mixed with some indignation,
at the conduct of a few men, once of great rank and still of great character,
who, deluded with specious names, have engaged in a business too deep for the
line of their understanding to fathom; who have lent their fair reputation and
the authority of their high-sounding names to the designs of men with whom they
could not be acquainted, and have thereby made their very virtues operate to
the ruin of their country.
So far as to the first cementing principle.
THE second material of cement for their new republic is the superiority of the
city of Paris; and this I admit is strongly connected with the other cementing
principle of paper circulation and confiscation. It is in this part of the project
we must look for the cause of the destruction of all the old bounds of provinces
and jurisdictions, ecclesiastical and secular, and the dissolution of all ancient
combinations of things, as well as the formation of so many small unconnected
republics. The power of the city of Paris is evidently one great spring of all
their politics. It is through the power of Paris, now become the center and
focus of jobbing, that the leaders of this faction direct, or rather command,
the whole legislative and the whole executive government. Everything, therefore,
must be done which can confirm the authority of that city over the other republics.
Paris is compact; she has an enormous strength, wholly disproportioned to the
force of any of the square republics; and this strength is collected and condensed
within a narrow compass. Paris has a natural and easy connection of its parts,
which will not be affected by any scheme of a geometrical constitution, nor
does it much signify whether its proportion of representation be more or less,
since it has the whole draft of fishes in its dragnet. The other divisions of
the kingdom, being hackled and torn to pieces, and separated from all their
habitual means and even principles of union, cannot, for some time at least,
confederate against her. Nothing was to be left in all the subordinate members
but weakness, disconnection, and confusion. To confirm this part of the plan,
the Assembly has lately come to a resolution that no two of their republics
shall have the same commander-in-chief.
To a person who takes a view of the whole, the strength of Paris, thus formed,
will appear a system of general weakness. It is boasted that the geometrical
policy has been adopted, that all local ideas should be sunk, and that the people
should no longer be Gascons, Picards, Bretons, Normans, but Frenchmen, with
one country, one heart, and one Assembly. But instead of being all Frenchmen,
the greater likelihood is that the inhabitants of that region will shortly have
no country. No man ever was attached by a sense of pride, partiality, or real
affection to a description of square measurement. He never will glory in belonging
to the Chequer No. 71, or to any other badge-ticket. We begin our public affections
in our families. No cold relation is a zealous citizen. We pass on to our neighborhoods
and our habitual provincial connections. These are inns and resting places.
Such divisions of our country as have been formed by habit, and not by a sudden
jerk of authority, were so many little images of the great country in which
the heart found something which it could fill. The love to the whole is not
extinguished by this subordinate partiality. Perhaps it is a sort of elemental
training to those higher and more large regards by which alone men come to be
affected, as with their own concern, in the prosperity of a kingdom so extensive
as that of France. In that general territory itself, as in the old name of provinces,
the citizens are interested from old prejudices and unreasoned habits, and not
on account of the geometric properties of its figure. The power and pre-eminence
of Paris does certainly press down and hold these republics together as long
as it lasts. But, for the reasons I have already given you, I think it cannot
last very long.
Passing from the civil creating and the civil cementing principles of this constitution
to the National Assembly, which is to appear and act as sovereign, we see a
body in its constitution with every possible power, and no possible external
control. We see a body without fundamental laws, without established maxims,
without respected rules of proceeding, which nothing can keep firm to any system
whatsoever. Their idea of their powers is always taken at the utmost stretch
of legislative competence, and their examples for common cases from the exceptions
of the most urgent necessity. The future is to be in most respects like the
present Assembly; but, by the mode of the new elections and the tendency of
the new circulations, it will be purged of the small degree of internal control
existing in a minority chosen originally from various interests, and preserving
something of their spirit. If possible, the next Assembly must be worse than
the present. The present, by destroying and altering everything, will leave
to their successors apparently nothing popular to do. They will be roused by
emulation and example to enterprises the boldest and the most absurd. To suppose
such an Assembly sitting in perfect quietude is ridiculous.
Your all-sufficient legislators, in their hurry to do everything at once, have
forgotten one thing that seems essential, and which I believe never has been
before, in the theory or the practice, omitted by any projector of a republic.
They have forgotten to constitute a senate or something of that nature and character.
Never before this time was heard of a body politic composed of one legislative
and active assembly, and its executive officers, without such a council, without
something to which foreign states might connect themselves; something to which,
in the ordinary detail of government, the people could look up; something which
might give a bias and steadiness and preserve something like consistency in
the proceedings of state. Such a body kings generally have as a council. A monarchy
may exist without it, but it seems to be in the very essence of a republican
government. It holds a sort of middle place between the supreme power exercised
by the people, or immediately delegated from them, and the mere executive. Of
this there are no traces in your constitution, and in providing nothing of this
kind your Solons and Numas have, as much as in anything else, discovered a sovereign
incapacity.
LET US NOW TURN OUR EYES to what they have done toward the formation of an executive
power. For this they have chosen a degraded king. This their first executive
officer is to be a machine without any sort of deliberative discretion in any
one act of his function. At best he is but a channel to convey to the National
Assembly such matter as it may import that body to know. If he had been made
the exclusive channel, the power would not have been without its importance,
though infinitely perilous to those who would choose to exercise it. But public
intelligence and statement of facts may pass to the Assembly with equal authenticity
through any other conveyance. As to the means, therefore, of giving a direction
to measures by the statement of an authorized reporter, this office of intelligence
is as nothing.
To consider the French scheme of an executive officer, in its two natural divisions
of civil and political. — In the first, it must be observed that, according
to the new constitution, the higher parts of judicature, in either of its lines,
are not in the king. The king of France is not the fountain of justice. The
judges, neither the original nor the appellate, are of his nomination. He neither
proposes the candidates, nor has a negative on the choice. He is not even the
public prosecutor. He serves only as a notary to authenticate the choice made
of the judges in the several districts. By his officers he is to execute their
sentence. When we look into the true nature of his authority, he appears to
be nothing more than a chief of bum bailiffs, sergeants at mace, catchpoles,
jailers, and hangmen. It is impossible to place anything called royalty in a
more degrading point of view. A thousand times better had it been for the dignity
of this unhappy prince that he had nothing at all to do with the administration
of justice, deprived as he is of all that is venerable and all that is consolatory
in that function, without power of originating any process, without a power
of suspension, mitigation, or pardon. Everything in justice that is vile and
odious is thrown upon him. It was not for nothing that the Assembly has been
at such pains to remove the stigma from certain offices when they are resolved
to place the person who had lately been their king in a situation but one degree
above the executioner, and in an office nearly of the same quality. It is not
in nature that, situated as the king of the French now is, he can respect himself
or can be respected by others.
View this new executive officer on the side of his political capacity, as he
acts under the orders of the National Assembly. To execute laws is a royal office;
to execute orders is not to be a king. However, a political executive magistracy,
though merely such, is a great trust. It is a trust indeed that has much depending
upon its faithful and diligent performance, both in the person presiding in
it and in all its subordinates. Means of performing this duty ought to be given
by regulation; and dispositions toward it ought to be infused by the circumstances
attendant on the trust. It ought to be environed with dignity, authority, and
consideration, and it ought to lead to glory. The office of execution is an
office of exertion. It is not from impotence we are to expect the tasks of power.
What sort of person is a king to command executory service, who has no means
whatsoever to reward it? Not in a permanent office; not in a grant of land;
no, not in a pension of fifty pounds a year; not in the vainest and most trivial
title. In France, the king is no more the fountain of honor than he is the fountain
of justice. All rewards, all distinctions are in other hands. Those who serve
the king can be actuated by no natural motive but fear — by a fear of
everything except their master. His functions of internal coercion are as odious
as those which he exercises in the department of justice. If relief is to be
given to any municipality, the Assembly gives it. If troops are to be sent to
reduce them to obedience to the Assembly, the king is to execute the order;
and upon every occasion he is to be spattered over with the blood of his people.
He has no negative; yet his name and authority is used to enforce every harsh
decree. Nay, he must concur in the butchery of those who shall attempt to free
him from his imprisonment or show the slightest attachment to his person or
to his ancient authority.
Executive magistracy ought to be constituted in such a manner that those who
compose it should be disposed to love and to venerate those whom they are bound
to obey. A purposed neglect or, what is worse, a literal but perverse and malignant
obedience must be the ruin of the wisest counsels. In vain will the law attempt
to anticipate or to follow such studied neglects and fraudulent attentions.
To make them act zealously is not in the competence of law. Kings, even such
as are truly kings, may and ought to bear the freedom of subjects that are obnoxious
to them. They may, too, without derogating from themselves, bear even the authority
of such persons if it promotes their service. Louis the Thirteenth mortally
hated the Cardinal de Richelieu, but his support of that minister against his
rivals was the source of all the glory of his reign and the solid foundation
of his throne itself. Louis the Fourteenth, when come to the throne, did not
love the Cardinal Mazarin, but for his interests he preserved him in power.
When old, he detested Louvois, but for years, whilst he faithfully served his
greatness, he endured his person. When George the Second took Mr. Pitt, who
certainly was not agreeable to him, into his councils, he did nothing which
could humble a wise sovereign. But these ministers, who were chosen by affairs,
not by affections, acted in the name of, and in trust for, kings, and not as
their avowed, constitutional, and ostensible masters. I think it impossible
that any king, when he has recovered his first terrors, can cordially infuse
vivacity and vigor into measures which he knows to be dictated by those who,
he must be persuaded, are in the highest degree ill affected to his person.
Will any ministers who serve such a king (or whatever he may be called) with
but a decent appearance of respect cordially obey the orders of those whom but
the other day in his name they had committed to the Bastille? Will they obey
the orders of those whom, whilst they were exercising despotic justice upon
them, they conceived they were treating with lenity, and from whom, in a prison,
they thought they had provided an asylum? If you expect such obedience amongst
your other innovations and regenerations, you ought to make a revolution in
nature and provide a new constitution for the human mind. Otherwise, your supreme
government cannot harmonize with its executory system. There are cases in which
we cannot take up with names and abstractions. You may call half a dozen leading
individuals, whom we have reason to fear and hate, the nation. It makes no other
difference than to make us fear and hate them the more. If it had been thought
justifiable and expedient to make such a revolution by such means, and through
such persons, as you have made yours, it would have been more wise to have completed
the business of the fifth and sixth of October. The new executive officer would
then owe his situation to those who are his creators as well as his masters;
and he might be bound in interest, in the society of crime, and (if in crimes
there could be virtues) in gratitude to serve those who had promoted him to
a place of great lucre and great sensual indulgence, and of something more;
for more he must have received from those who certainly would not have limited
an aggrandized creature, as they have done a submitting antagonist.
A king circumstanced as the present, if he is totally stupefied by his misfortunes
so as to think it not the necessity but the premium and privilege of life to
eat and sleep, without any regard to glory, can never be fit for the office.
If he feels as men commonly feel, he must be sensible that an office so circumstanced
is one in which he can obtain no fame or reputation. He has no generous interest
that can excite him to action. At best, his conduct will be passive and defensive.
To inferior people such an office might be matter of honor. But to be raised
to it, and to descend to it, are different things and suggest different sentiments.
Does he really name the ministers? They will have a sympathy with him. Are they
forced upon him? The whole business between them and the nominal king will be
mutual counteraction. In all other countries, the office of ministers of state
is of the highest dignity. In France it is full of peril, and incapable of glory.
Rivals, however, they will have in their nothingness, whilst shallow ambition
exists in the world, or the desire of a miserable salary is an incentive to
short-sighted avarice. Those competitors of the ministers are enabled by your
constitution to attack them in their vital parts, whilst they have not the means
of repelling their charges in any other than the degrading character of culprits.
The ministers of state in France are the only persons in that country who are
incapable of a share in the national councils. What ministers! What councils!
What a nation! — But they are responsible. It is a poor service that is
to be had from responsibility. The elevation of mind to be derived from fear
will never make a nation glorious. Responsibility prevents crimes. It makes
all attempts against the laws dangerous. But for a principle of active and zealous
service, none but idiots could think of it. Is the conduct of a war to be trusted
to a man who may abhor its principle, who, in every step he may take to render
it successful, confirms the power of those by whom he is oppressed? Will foreign
states seriously treat with him who has no prerogative of peace or war? No,
not so much as in a single vote by himself or his ministers, or by any one whom
he can possibly influence. A state of contempt is not a state for a prince;
better get rid of him at once.
I know it will be said that these humors in the court and executive government
will continue only through this generation, and that the king has been brought
to declare the dauphin shall be educated in a conformity to his situation. If
he is made to conform to his situation, he will have no education at all. His
training must be worse, even, than that of an arbitrary monarch. If he reads
— whether he reads or not — some good or evil genius will tell him
his ancestors were kings. Thenceforward his object must be to assert himself
and to avenge his parents. This you will say is not his duty. That may be; but
it is nature; and whilst you pique nature against you, you do unwisely to trust
to duty. In this futile scheme of polity, the state nurses in its bosom, for
the present, a source of weakness, perplexity, counteraction, inefficiency,
and decay; and it prepares the means of its final ruin. In short, I see nothing
in the executive force (I cannot call it authority) that has even an appearance
of vigor, or that has the smallest degree of just correspondence or symmetry,
or amicable relation with the supreme power, either as it now exists or as it
is planned for the future government.
You have settled, by an economy as perverted as the policy, two[50] establishments
of government — one real, one fictitious. Both maintained at a vast expense,
but the fictitious at, I think, the greatest. Such a machine as the latter is
not worth the grease of its wheels. The expense is exorbitant, and neither the
show nor the use deserve the tenth part of the charge. Oh! but I don't do justice
to the talents of the legislators: I don't allow, as I ought to do, for necessity.
Their scheme of executive force was not their choice. This pageant must be kept.
The people would not consent to part with it. Right; I understand you. You do,
in spite of your grand theories, to which you would have heaven and earth to
bend — you do know how to conform yourselves to the nature and circumstances
of things. But when you were obliged to conform thus far to circumstances, you
ought to have carried your submission further, and to have made, what you were
obliged to take, a proper instrument, and useful to its end. That was in your
power. For instance, among many others, it was in your power to leave to your
king the right of peace and war. What! to leave to the executive magistrate
the most dangerous of all prerogatives? I know none more dangerous, nor any
one more necessary to be so trusted. I do not say that this prerogative ought
to be trusted to your king unless he enjoyed other auxiliary trusts along with
it, which he does not now hold. But if he did possess them, hazardous as they
are undoubtedly, advantages would arise from such a constitution, more than
compensating the risk. There is no other way of keeping the several potentates
of Europe from intriguing distinctly and personally with the members of your
Assembly, from intermeddling in all your concerns, and fomenting, in the heart
of your country, the most pernicious of all factions — factions in the
interest and under the direction of foreign powers. From that worst of evils,
thank God, we are still free. Your skill, if you had any, would be well employed
to find out indirect correctives and controls upon this perilous trust. If you
did not like those which in England we have chosen, your leaders might have
exerted their abilities in contriving better. If it were necessary to exemplify
the consequences of such an executive government as yours, in the management
of great affairs, I should refer you to the late reports of M. de Montmorin
to the National Assembly, and all the other proceedings relative to the differences
between Great Britain and Spain. It would be treating your understanding with
disrespect to point them out to you.
I hear that the persons who are called ministers have signified an intention
of resigning their places. I am rather astonished that they have not resigned
long since. For the universe I would not have stood in the situation in which
they have been for this last twelvemonth. They wished well, I take it for granted,
to the revolution. Let this fact be as it may, they could not, placed as they
were upon an eminence, though an eminence of humiliation, but be the first to
see collectively, and to feel each in his own department, the evils which have
been produced by that revolution. In every step which they took, or forbore
to take, they must have felt the degraded situation of their country and their
utter incapacity of serving it. They are in a species of subordinate servitude,
in which no men before them were ever seen. Without confidence from their sovereign,
on whom they were forced, or from the Assembly, who forced them upon him, all
the noble functions of their office are executed by committees of the Assembly
without any regard whatsoever to their personal or their official authority.
They are to execute, without power; they are to be responsible, without discretion;
they are to deliberate, without choice. In their puzzled situations, under two
sovereigns, over neither of whom they have any influence, they must act in such
a manner as (in effect, whatever they may intend) sometimes to betray the one,
sometimes the other, and always to betray themselves. Such has been their situation,
such must be the situation of those who succeed them. I have much respect and
many good wishes for M. Necker. I am obliged to him for attentions. I thought,
when his enemies had driven him from Versailles, that his exile was a subject
of most serious congratulations — sed multae urbes et publica vota vicerunt.
He is now sitting on the ruins of the finances and of the monarchy of France.
A great deal more might be observed on the strange constitution of the executory
part of the new government, but fatigue must give bounds to the discussion of
subjects which in themselves have hardly any limits.
AS little genius and talent am I able to perceive in the plan of judicature
formed by the National Assembly. According to their invariable course, the framers
of your constitution have begun with the utter abolition of the parliaments.
These venerable bodies, like the rest of the old government, stood in need of
reform, even though there should be no change made in the monarchy. They required
several more alterations to adapt them to the system of a free constitution.
But they had particulars in their constitution, and those not a few, which deserved
approbation from the wise. They possessed one fundamental excellence: they were
independent. The most doubtful circumstance attendant on their office, that
of its being vendible, contributed however to this independence of character.
They held for life. Indeed, they may be said to have held by inheritance. Appointed
by the monarch, they were considered as nearly out of his power. The most determined
exertions of that authority against them only showed their radical independence.
They composed permanent bodies politic, constituted to resist arbitrary innovation;
and from that corporate constitution, and from most of their forms, they were
well calculated to afford both certainty and stability to the laws. They had
been a safe asylum to secure these laws in all the revolutions of humor and
opinion. They had saved that sacred deposit of the country during the reigns
of arbitrary princes and the struggles of arbitrary factions. They kept alive
the memory and record of the constitution. They were the great security to private
property which might be said (when personal liberty had no existence) to be,
in fact, as well guarded in France as in any other country. Whatever is supreme
in a state ought to have, as much as possible, its judicial authority so constituted
as not only not to depend upon it, but in some sort to balance it. It ought
to give a security to its justice against its power. It ought to make its judicature,
as it were, something exterior to the state.
These parliaments had furnished, not the best certainly, but some considerable
corrective to the excesses and vices of the monarchy. Such an independent judicature
was ten times more necessary when a democracy became the absolute power of the
country. In that constitution, elective temporary, local judges, such as you
have contrived, exercising their dependent functions in a narrow society, must
be the worst of all tribunals. In them it will be vain to look for any appearance
of justice toward strangers, toward the obnoxious rich, toward the minority
of routed parties, toward all those who in the election have supported unsuccessful
candidates. It will be impossible to keep the new tribunals clear of the worst
spirit of faction. All contrivances by ballot we know experimentally to be vain
and childish to prevent a discovery of inclinations. Where they may the best
answer the purposes of concealment, they answer to produce suspicion, and this
is a still more mischievous cause of partiality.
If the parliaments had been preserved, instead of being dissolved at so ruinous
a charge to the nation, they might have served in this new commonwealth, perhaps
not precisely the same (I do not mean an exact parallel), but nearly the same,
purposes as the court and senate of Areopagus did in Athens; that is, as one
of the balances and correctives to the evils of a light and unjust democracy.
Every one knows that this tribunal was the great stay of that state; every one
knows with what care it was upheld, and with what a religious awe it was consecrated.
The parliaments were not wholly free from faction, I admit; but this evil was
exterior and accidental, and not so much the vice of their constitution itself,
as it must be in your new contrivance of sexennial elective judicatories. Several
English commend the abolition of the old tribunals, as supposing that they determined
everything by bribery and corruption. But they have stood the test of monarchic
and republican scrutiny. The court was well disposed to prove corruption on
those bodies when the were dissolved in 1771. Those who have again dissolved
them would have done the same if they could, but both inquisitions having failed,
I conclude that gross pecuniary corruption must have been rather rare amongst
them.
It would have been prudent, along with the parliaments, to preserve their ancient
power of registering, and of remonstrating at least upon, all the decrees of
the National Assembly, as they did upon those which passed in the time of the
monarchy. It would be a means of squaring the occasional decrees of a democracy
to some principles of general jurisprudence. The vice of the ancient democracies,
and one cause of their ruin, was that they ruled, as you do, by occasional decrees,
psephismata. This practice soon broke in upon the tenor and consistency of the
laws; it abated the respect of the people toward them, and totally destroyed
them in the end.
Your vesting the power of remonstrance, which, in the time of the monarchy,
existed in the parliament of Paris, in your principal executive officer, whom,
in spite of common sense, you persevere in calling king, is the height of absurdity.
You ought never to suffer remonstrance from him who is to execute. This is to
understand neither council nor execution, neither authority nor obedience. The
person whom you call king ought not to have this power, or he ought to have
more.
Your present arrangement is strictly judicial. Instead of imitating your monarchy
and seating your judges on a bench of independence, your object is to reduce
them to the most blind obedience. As you have changed all things, you have invented
new principles of order. You first appoint judges, who, I suppose, are to determine
according to law, and then you let them know that, at some time or other, you
intend to give them some law by which they are to determine. Any studies which
they have made (if any they have made) are to be useless to them. But to supply
these studies, they are to be sworn to obey all the rules, orders, and instructions
which from time to time they are to receive from the National Assembly. These
if they submit to, they leave no ground of law to the subject. They become complete
and most dangerous instruments in the hands of the governing power which, in
the midst of a cause or on the prospect of it, may wholly change the rule of
decision. If these orders of the National Assembly come to be contrary to the
will of the people, who locally choose judges, such confusion must happen as
is terrible to think of. For the judges owe their places to the local authority,
and the commands they are sworn to obey come from those who have no share in
their appointment. In the meantime they have the example of the court of Chatelet
to encourage and guide them in the exercise of their functions. That court is
to try criminals sent to it by the National Assembly, or brought before it by
other courses of delation. They sit under a guard to save their own lives. They
know not by what law they judge, nor under what authority they act, nor by what
tenure they hold. It is thought that they are sometimes obliged to condemn at
peril of their lives. This is not perhaps certain, nor can it be ascertained;
but when they acquit, we know they have seen the persons whom they discharge,
with perfect impunity to the actors, hanged at the door of their court.
The Assembly indeed promises that they will form a body of law, which shall
be short, simple, clear, and so forth. That is, by their short laws they will
leave much to the discretion of the judge, whilst they have exploded the authority
of all the learning which could make judicial discretion (a thing perilous at
best) deserving the appellation of a sound discretion.
It is curious to observe that the administrative bodies are carefully exempted
from the jurisdiction of these new tribunals. That is, those persons are exempted
from the power of the laws who ought to be the most entirely submitted to them.
Those who execute public pecuniary trusts ought of all men to be the most strictly
held to their duty. One would have thought that it must have been among your
earliest cares, if you did not mean that those administrative bodies should
be real, sovereign, independent states, to form an awful tribunal, like your
late parliaments, or like our king's bench, where all corporate officers might
obtain protection in the legal exercise of their functions, and would find coercion
if they trespassed against their legal duty. But the cause of the exemption
is plain. These administrative bodies are the great instruments of the present
leaders in their progress through democracy to oligarchy. They must, therefore,
be put above the law. It will be said that the legal tribunals which you have
made are unfit to coerce them. They are, undoubtedly. They are unfit for any
rational purpose. It will be said, too, that the administrative bodies will
be accountable to the General Assembly. This I fear is talking without much
consideration of the nature of that Assembly, or of these corporations. However,
to be subject to the pleasure of that Assembly is not to be subject to law either
for protection or for constraint.
This establishment of judges as yet wants something to its completion. It is
to be crowned by a new tribunal. This is to be a grand state judicature, and
it is to judge of crimes committed against the nation, that is, against the
power of the Assembly. It seems as if they had something in their view of the
nature of the high court of justice erected in England during the time of the
great usurpation. As they have not yet finished this part of the scheme, it
is impossible to form a right judgment upon it. However, if great care is not
taken to form it in a spirit very different from that which has guided them
in their proceedings relative to state offenses, this tribunal, subservient
to their inquisition, the Committee of Research, will extinguish the last sparks
of liberty in France and settle the most dreadful and arbitrary tyranny ever
known in any nation. If they wish to give to this tribunal any appearance of
liberty and justice, they must not evoke from or send to it the causes relative
to their own members, at their pleasure. They must also remove the seat of that
tribunal out of the republic of Paris.[51]
HAS more wisdom been displayed in the constitution of your army than what is
discoverable in your plan of judicature? The able arrangement of this part is
the more difficult, and requires the greatest skill and attention, not only
as the great concern in itself, but as it is the third cementing principle in
the new body of republics which you call the French nation. Truly it is not
easy to divine what that army may become at last. You have voted a very large
one, and on good appointments, at least fully equal to your apparent means of
payment. But what is the principle of its discipline, or whom is it to obey?
You have got the wolf by the ears, and I wish you joy of the happy position
in which you have chosen to place yourselves, and in which you are well circumstanced
for a free deliberation relatively to that army or to anything else.
The minister and secretary of state for the war department is M. de la Tour
du Pin. This gentleman, like his colleagues in administration, is a most zealous
assertor of the revolution, and a sanguine admirer of the new constitution which
originated in that event. His statement of facts, relative to the military of
France, is important, not only from his official and personal authority, but
because it displays very clearly the actual condition of the army in France,
and because it throws light on the principles upon which the Assembly proceeds
in the administration of this critical object. It may enable us to form some
judgment how far it may be expedient in this country to imitate the martial
policy of France.
M. de la Tour du Pin, on the fourth of last June, comes to give an account of
the state of his department as it exists under the auspices of the National
Assembly. No man knows it so well; no man can express it better. Addressing
himself to the National Assembly, he says —
His Majesty has this day sent me to apprise you of the multiplied disorders
of which every day he receives the most distressing intelligence. The army (le
corps militaire) threatens to fall into the most turbulent anarchy. Entire regiments
have dared to violate at once the respect due to the laws, to the king, to the
order established by your decrees, and to the oaths which they have taken with
the most awful solemnity. Compelled by my duty to give you information of these
excesses, my heart bleeds when I consider who they are that have committed them.
Those against whom it is not in my power to withhold the most grievous complaints
are a part of that very soldiery which to this day have been so full of honor
and loyalty, and with whom, for fifty years, I have lived the comrade and the
friend.
What incomprehensible spirit of delirium and delusion has all at once led them
astray? Whilst you are indefatigable in establishing uniformity in the empire,
and molding the whole into one coherent and consistent body; whilst the French
are taught by you at once the respect which the laws owe to the rights of man,
and that which the citizens owe to the laws, the administration of the army
presents nothing but disturbance and confusion. I see in more than one corps
the bonds of discipline relaxed or broken; the most unheard-of pretensions avowed
directly and without any disguise; the ordinances without force; the chiefs
without authority; the military chest and the colors carried off; the authority
of the king himself (risum teneatis?) proudly defied; the officers despised,
degraded, threatened, driven away, and some of them prisoners in the midst of
their corps, dragging on a precarious life in the bosom of disgust and humiliation.
To fill up the measure of all these horrors, the commandants of places have
had their throats cut, under the eyes and almost in the arms of their own soldiers.
These evils are great; but they are not the worst consequences which may be
produced by such military insurrections. Sooner or later they may menace the
nation itself. The nature of things requires that the army should never act
but as an instrument. The moment that, erecting itself into a deliberative body,
it shall act according to its own resolutions, the government, be it what it
may, will immediately degenerate into a military democracy — a species
of political monster which has always ended by devouring those who have produced
it.
After all this, who must not be alarmed at the irregular consultations and turbulent
committees formed in some regiments by the common soldiers and non-commissioned
officers without the knowledge, or even in contempt of the authority, of their
superiors, although the presence and concurrence of those superiors could give
no authority to such monstrous democratic assemblies (comices).
It is not necessary to add much to this finished picture — finished as
far as its canvas admits, but, as I apprehend, not taking in the whole of the
nature and complexity of the disorders of this military democracy which, the
minister at war truly and wisely observes, wherever it exists must be the true
constitution of the state, by whatever formal appellation it may pass. For though
he informs the Assembly that the more considerable part of the army have not
cast off their obedience, but are still attached to their duty, yet those travelers
who have seen the corps whose conduct is the best rather observe in them the
absence of mutiny than the existence of discipline.
I cannot help pausing here for a moment to reflect upon the expressions of surprise
which this minister has let fall, relative to the excesses he relates. To him
the departure of the troops from their ancient principles of loyalty and honor
seems quite inconceivable. Surely those to whom he addresses himself know the
causes of it but too well. They know the doctrines which they have preached,
the decrees which they have passed, the practices which they have countenanced.
The soldiers remember the 6th of October. They recollect the French guards.
They have not forgotten the taking of the king's castles in Paris and Marseilles.
That the governors in both places were murdered with impunity is a fact that
has not passed out of their minds. They do not abandon the principles laid down
so ostentatiously and laboriously of the equality of men. They cannot shut their
eyes to the degradation of the whole noblesse of France and the suppression
of the very idea of a gentleman. The total abolition of titles and distinctions
is not lost upon them. But M. de la Tour du Pin is astonished at their disloyalty,
when the doctors of the Assembly have taught them at the same time the respect
due to laws. It is easy to judge which of the two sorts of lessons men with
arms in their hands are likely to learn. As to the authority of the king, we
may collect from the minister himself (if any argument on that head were not
quite superfluous) that it is not of more consideration with these troops than
it is with everybody else. "The king", says he, "has over and
over again repeated his orders to put a stop to these excesses; but in so terrible
a crisis your (the Assembly's) concurrence is become indispensably necessary
to prevent the evils which menace the state. You unite to the force of the legislative
power that of opinion still more important". To be sure the army can have
no opinion of the power or authority of the king. Perhaps the soldier has by
this time learned that the Assembly itself does not enjoy a much greater degree
of liberty than that royal figure.
It is now to be seen what has been proposed in this exigency, one of the greatest
that can happen in a state. The minister requests the Assembly to array itself
in all its terrors, and to call forth all its majesty. He desires that the grave
and severe principles announced by them may give vigor to the king's proclamation.
After this we should have looked for courts, civil and martial, breaking of
some corps, decimating of others, and all the terrible means which necessity
has employed in such cases to arrest the progress of the most terrible of all
evils; particularly, one might expect that a serious inquiry would be made into
the murder of commandants in the view of their soldiers. Not one word of all
this or of anything like it. After they had been told that the soldiery trampled
upon the decrees of the Assembly promulgated by the king, the Assembly pass
new decrees, and they authorize the king to make new proclamations. After the
secretary at war had stated that the regiments had paid no regard to oaths pretes
avec la plus imposante solemnite, they propose — what? More oaths. They
renew decrees and proclamations as they experience their insufficiency, and
they multiply oaths in proportion as they weaken in the minds of men, the sanctions
of religion. I hope that handy abridgments of the excellent sermons of Voltaire,
d'Alembert, Diderot, and Helvetius, on the Immortality of the Soul, on a particular
superintending Providence, and on a Future State of Rewards and Punishments
are sent down to the soldiers along with their civic oaths. Of this I have no
doubt; as I understand that a certain description of reading makes no inconsiderable
part of their military exercises, and that they are full as well supplied with
the ammunition of pamphlets as of cartridges.
To prevent the mischiefs arising from conspiracies, irregular consultations,
seditious committees, and monstrous democratic assemblies (comitia, comices)
of the soldiers, and all the disorders arising from idleness, luxury, dissipation,
and insubordination, I believe the most astonishing means have been used that
ever occurred to men, even in all the inventions of this prolific age. It is
no less than this: the king has promulgated in circular letters to all the regiments
his direct authority and encouragement that the several corps should join themselves
with the clubs and confederations in the several municipalities, and mix with
them in their feasts and civic entertainments! This jolly discipline, it seems,
is to soften the ferocity of their minds, to reconcile them to their bottle
companions of other descriptions, and to merge particular conspiracies in more
general associations.[52] That this remedy would be pleasing to the soldiers,
as they are described by M. de la Tour du Pin, I can readily believe; and that,
however mutinous otherwise, they will dutifully submit themselves to these royal
proclamations. But I should question whether all this civic swearing, clubbing,
and feasting would dispose them, more than at present they are disposed, to
an obedience to their officers, or teach them better to submit to the austere
rules of military discipline. It will make them admirable citizens after the
French mode, but not quite so good soldiers after any mode. A doubt might well
arise whether the conversations at these good tables would fit them a great
deal the better for the character of mere instruments, which this veteran officer
and statesman justly observes the nature of things always requires an army to
be.
Concerning the likelihood of this improvement in discipline by the free conversation
of the soldiers with municipal festive societies, which is thus officially encouraged
by royal authority and sanction, we may judge by the state of the municipalities
themselves, furnished to us by the war minister in this very speech. He conceives
good hopes of the success of his endeavors toward restoring order for the present
from the good disposition of certain regiments, but he finds something cloudy
with regard to the future. As to preventing the return of confusion, for this
the administration (says he) cannot be answerable to you as long as they see
the municipalities arrogate to themselves an authority over the troops which
your institutions have reserved wholly to the monarch. You have fixed the limits
of the military authority and the municipal authority. You have bounded the
action which you have permitted to the latter over the former to the right of
requisition, but never did the letter or the spirit of your decrees authorize
the commons in these municipalities to break the officers, to try them, to give
orders to the soldiers, to drive them from the posts committed to their guard,
to stop them in their marches ordered by the king, or, in a word, to enslave
the troops to the caprice of each of the cities or even market towns through
which they are to pass.
Such is the character and disposition of the municipal society which is to reclaim
the soldiery, to bring them back to the true principles of military subordination,
and to render them machines in the hands of the supreme power of the country!
Such are the distempers of the French troops! Such is their cure! As the army
is, so is the navy. The municipalities supersede the orders of the Assembly,
and the seamen in their turn supersede the orders of the municipalities. From
my heart I pity the condition of a respectable servant of the public like this
war minister, obliged in his old age to pledge the Assembly in their civic cups,
and to enter with a hoary head into all the fantastic vagaries of these juvenile
politicians. Such schemes are not like propositions coming from a man of fifty
years' wear and tear amongst mankind. They seem rather such as ought to be expected
from those grand compounders in politics who shorten the road to their degrees
in the state and have a certain inward fanatical assurance and illumination
upon all subjects, upon the credit of which one of their doctors has thought
fit, with great applause, and greater success, to caution the Assembly not to
attend to old men or to any persons who valued themselves upon their experience.
I suppose all the ministers of state must qualify and take this test —
wholly abjuring the errors and heresies of experience and observation. Every
man has his own relish. But I think if I could not attain to the wisdom, I would
at least preserve something of the stiff and peremptory dignity of age. These
gentlemen deal in regeneration; but at any price I should hardly yield my rigid
fibers to be regenerated by them, nor begin, in my grand climacteric, to squall
in their new accents or to stammer, in my second cradle, the elemental sounds
of their barbarous metaphysics.[53] Si isti mihi largiantur ut repuerascam,
et in eorum cunis vagiam, valde recusem!
The imbecility of any part of the puerile and pedantic system, which they call
a constitution, cannot be laid open without discovering the utter insufficiency
and mischief of every other part with which it comes in contact, or that bears
any the remotest relation to it. You cannot propose a remedy for the incompetence
of the crown without displaying the debility of the Assembly. You cannot deliberate
on the confusion of the army of the state without disclosing the worse disorders
of the armed municipalities. The military lays open the civil, and the civil
betrays the military, anarchy. I wish everybody carefully to peruse the eloquent
speech (such it is) of M. de la Tour du Pin. He attributes the salvation of
the municipalities to the good behavior of some of the troops. These troops
are to preserve the well-disposed part of those municipalities, which is confessed
to be the weakest, from the pillage of the worst-disposed, which is the strongest.
But the municipalities affect a sovereignty and will command those troops which
are necessary for their protection. Indeed they must command them or court them.
The municipalities, by the necessity of their situation, and by the republican
powers they have obtained, must, with relation to the military, be the masters,
or the servants, or the confederates, or each successively; or they must make
a jumble of all together, according to circumstances. What government is there
to coerce the army but the municipality, or the municipality but the army? To
preserve concord where authority is extinguished, at the hazard of all consequences,
the Assembly attempts to cure the distempers by the distempers themselves; and
they hope to preserve themselves from a purely military democracy by giving
it a debauched interest in the municipal.
If the soldiers once come to mix for any time in the municipal clubs, cabals,
and confederacies, an elective attraction will draw them to the lowest and most
desperate part. With them will be their habits, affections, and sympathies.
The military conspiracies, which are to be remedied by civic confederacies;
the rebellious municipalities, which are to be rendered obedient by furnishing
them with the means of seducing the very armies of the state that are to keep
them in order; all these chimeras of a monstrous and portentous policy must
aggravate the confusion from which they have arisen. There must be blood. The
want of common judgment manifested in the construction of all their descriptions
of forces and in all their kinds of civil and judicial authorities will make
it flow. Disorders may be quieted in one time and in one part. They will break
out in others, because the evil is radical and intrinsic. All these schemes
of mixing mutinous soldiers with seditious citizens must weaken still more and
more the military connection of soldiers with their officers, as well as add
military and mutinous audacity to turbulent artificers and peasants. To secure
a real army, the officer should be first and last in the eye of the soldier;
first and last in his attention, observance, and esteem. Officers it seems there
are to be, whose chief qualification must be temper and patience. They are to
manage their troops by electioneering arts. They must bear themselves as candidates,
not as commanders. But as by such means power may be occasionally in their hands,
the authority by which they are to be nominated becomes of high importance.
What you may do finally does not appear, nor is it of much moment whilst the
strange and contradictory relation between your army and all the parts of your
republic, as well as the puzzled relation of those parts to each other and to
the whole, remain as they are. You seem to have given the provisional nomination
of the officers in the first instance to the king, with a reserve of approbation
by the National Assembly. Men who have an interest to pursue are extremely sagacious
in discovering the true seat of power. They must soon perceive that those who
can negative indefinitely in reality appoint. The officers must, therefore,
look to their intrigues in that Assembly as the sole certain road to promotion.
Still, however, by your new constitution they must begin their solicitation
at court. This double negotiation for military rank seems to me a contrivance
as well adapted, as if it were studied for no other end, to promote faction
in the Assembly itself, relative to this vast military patronage, and then to
poison the corps of officers with factions of a nature still more dangerous
to the safety of government, upon any bottom on which it can be placed, and
destructive in the end to the efficiency of the army itself. Those officers
who lose the promotions intended for them by the crown must become of a faction
opposite to that of the Assembly, which has rejected their claims, and must
nourish discontents in the heart of the army against the ruling powers. Those
officers, on the other hand, who, by carrying their point through an interest
in the Assembly, feel themselves to be at best only second in the good will
of the crown, though first in that of the Assembly, must slight an authority
which would not advance and could not retard their promotion. If to avoid these
evils you will have no other rule for command or promotion than seniority, you
will have an army of formality; at the same time it will become more independent
and more of a military republic. Not they, but the king is the machine. A king
is not to be deposed by halves. If he is not everything in the command of an
army, he is nothing. What is the effect of a power placed nominally at the head
of the army who to that army is no object of gratitude or of fear? Such a cipher
is not fit for the administration of an object, of all things the most delicate,
the supreme command of military men. They must be constrained (and their inclinations
lead them to what their necessities require) by a real, vigorous, effective,
decided, personal authority. The authority of the Assembly itself suffers by
passing through such a debilitating channel as they have chosen. The army will
not long look to an assembly acting through the organ of false show and palpable
imposition. They will not seriously yield obedience to a prisoner. They will
either despise a pageant, or they will pity a captive king. This relation of
your army to the crown will, if I am not greatly mistaken, become a serious
dilemma in your politics.
It is, besides, to be considered whether an assembly like yours, even supposing
that it was in possession of another sort of organ through which its orders
were to pass, is fit for promoting the obedience and discipline of an army.
It is known that armies have hitherto yielded a very precarious and uncertain
obedience to any senate or popular authority; and they will least of all yield
it to an assembly which is only to have a continuance of two years. The officers
must totally lose the characteristic disposition of military men if they see
with perfect submission and due admiration the dominion of pleaders; especially
when they find that they have a new court to pay to an endless succession of
those pleaders, whose military policy, and the genius of whose command (if they
should have any), must be as uncertain as their duration is transient. In the
weakness of one kind of authority, and in the fluctuation of all, the officers
of an army will remain for some time mutinous and full of faction until some
popular general, who understands the art of conciliating the soldiery, and who
possesses the true spirit of command, shall draw the eyes of all men upon himself.
Armies will obey him on his personal account. There is no other way of securing
military obedience in this state of things. But the moment in which that event
shall happen, the person who really commands the army is your master —
the master (that is little) of your king, the master of your Assembly, the master
of your whole republic.
How came the Assembly by their present power over the army? Chiefly, to be sure,
by debauching the soldiers from their officers. They have begun by a most terrible
operation. They have touched the central point about which the particles that
compose armies are at repose. They have destroyed the principle of obedience
in the great, essential, critical link between the officer and the soldier,
just where the chain of military subordination commences and on which the whole
of that system depends. The soldier is told he is a citizen and has the rights
of man and citizen. The right of a man, he is told, is to be his own governor
and to be ruled only by those to whom he delegates that self-government. It
is very natural he should think that he ought most of all to have his choice
where he is to yield the greatest degree of obedience. He will therefore, in
all probability, systematically do what he does at present occasionally; that
is, he will exercise at least a negative in the choice of his officers. At present
the officers are known at best to be only permissive, and on their good behavior.
In fact, there have been many instances in which they have been cashiered by
their corps. Here is a second negative on the choice of the king — a negative
as effectual at least as the other of the Assembly. The soldiers know already
that it has been a question, not ill received in the National Assembly, whether
they ought not to have the direct choice of their officers, or some proportion
of them? When such matters are in deliberation it is no extravagant supposition
that they will incline to the opinion most favorable to their pretensions. They
will not bear to be deemed the army of an imprisoned king whilst another army
in the same country, with whom, too, they are to feast and confederate, is to
be considered as the free army of a free constitution. They will cast their
eyes on the other and more permanent army; I mean the municipal. That corps,
they well know, does actually elect its own officers. They may not be able to
discern the grounds of distinction on which they are not to elect a Marquis
de la Fayette (or what is his new name?) of their own. If this election of a
commander-in-chief be a part of the rights of men, why not of theirs? They see
elective justices of peace, elective judges, elective curates, elective bishops,
elective municipalities, and elective commanders of the Parisian army —
why should they alone be excluded? Are the brave troops of France the only men
in that nation who are not the fit judges of military merit and of the qualifications
necessary for a commander-in-chief? Are they paid by the state and do they,
therefore, lose the rights of men? They are a part of that nation themselves
and contribute to that pay. And is not the king, is not the National Assembly,
and are not all who elect the National Assembly, likewise paid? Instead of seeing
all these forfeit their rights by their receiving a salary, they perceive that
in all these cases a salary is given for the exercise of those rights. All your
resolutions, all your proceedings, all your debates, all the works of your doctors
in religion and politics have industriously been put into their hands, and you
expect that they will apply to their own case just as much of your doctrines
and examples as suits your pleasure.
EVERYTHING depends upon the army in such a government as yours, for you have
industriously destroyed all the opinions and prejudices and, as far as in you
lay, all the instincts which support government. Therefore, the moment any difference
arises between your National Assembly and any part of the nation, you must have
recourse to force. Nothing else is left to you, or rather you have left nothing
else to yourselves. You see, by the report of your war minister, that the distribution
of the army is in a great measure made with a view of internal coercion. [54]
You must rule by an army; and you have infused into that army by which you rule,
as well as into the whole body of the nation, principles which after a time
must disable you in the use you resolve to make of it. The king is to call out
troops to act against his people, when the world has been told, and the assertion
is still ringing in our ears, that troops ought not to fire on citizens. The
colonies assert to themselves an independent constitution and a free trade.
They must be constrained by troops. In what chapter of your code of the rights
of men are they able to read that it is a part of the rights of men to have
their commerce monopolized and restrained for the benefit of others? As the
colonists rise on you, the Negroes rise on them. Troops again — massacre,
torture, hanging! These are your rights of men! These are the fruits of metaphysic
declarations wantonly made, and shamefully retracted! It was but the other day
that the farmers of land in one of your provinces refused to pay some sort of
rents to the lord of the soil. In consequence of this, you decree that the country
people shall pay all rents and dues, except those which as grievances you have
abolished; and if they refuse, then you order the king to march troops against
them. You lay down metaphysic propositions which infer universal consequences,
and then you attempt to limit logic by despotism. The leaders of the present
system tell them of their rights, as men, to take fortresses, to murder guards,
to seize on kings without the least appearance of authority even from the Assembly,
whilst, as the sovereign legislative body, that Assembly was sitting in the
name of the nation — and yet these leaders presume to order out the troops
which have acted in these very disorders, to coerce those who shall judge on
the principles, and follow the examples, which have been guaranteed by their
own approbation.
The leaders teach the people to abhor and reject all feudality as the barbarism
of tyranny, and they tell them afterwards how much of that barbarous tyranny
they are to bear with patience. As they are prodigal of light with regard to
grievances, so the people find them sparing in the extreme with regard to redress.
They know that not only certain quitrents and personal duties, which you have
permitted them to redeem (but have furnished no money for the redemption), are
as nothing to those burdens for which you have made no provision at all. They
know that almost the whole system of landed property in its origin is feudal;
that it is the distribution of the possessions of the original proprietors,
made by a barbarous conqueror to his barbarous instruments; and that the most
grievous effects of the conquest are the land rents of every kind, as without
question they are.
The peasants, in all probability, are the descendants of these ancient proprietors,
Romans or Gauls. But if they fail, in any degree, in the titles which they make
on the principles of antiquaries and lawyers, they retreat into the citadel
of the rights of men. There they find that men are equal; and the earth, the
kind and equal mother of all, ought not to be monopolized to foster the pride
and luxury of any men, who by nature are no better than themselves, and who,
if they do not labor for their bread, are worse. They find that by the laws
of nature the occupant and subduer of the soil is the true proprietor; that
there is no prescription against nature; and that the agreements (where any
there are) which have been made with the landlords, during the time of slavery,
are only the effect of duress and force; and that when the people reentered
into the rights of men, those agreements were made as void as everything else
which had been settled under the prevalence of the old feudal and aristocratic
tyranny. They will tell you that they see no difference between an idler with
a hat and a national cockade and an idler in a cowl or in a rochet. If you ground
the title to rents on succession and prescription, they tell you from the speech
of M. Camus, published by the National Assembly for their information, that
things ill begun cannot avail themselves of prescription; that the title of
these lords was vicious in its origin; and that force is at least as bad as
fraud. As to the title by succession, they will tell you that the succession
of those who have cultivated the soil is the true pedigree of property, and
not rotten parchments and silly substitutions; that the lords have enjoyed their
usurpation too long; and that if they allow to these lay monks any charitable
pension, they ought to be thankful to the bounty of the true proprietor, who
is so generous toward a false claimant to his goods.
When the peasants give you back that coin of sophistic reason on which you have
set your image and superscription, you cry it down as base money and tell them
you will pay for the future with French guards, and dragoons, and hussars. You
hold up, to chastise them, the second-hand authority of a king, who is only
the instrument of destroying, without any power of protecting either the people
or his own person. Through him it seems you will make yourselves obeyed. They
answer: You have taught us that there are no gentlemen, and which of your principles
teach u